Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n council_n pope_n supremacy_n 3,178 5 10.3770 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A17513 A iustification of the Church of England Demonstrating it to be a true Church of God, affording all sufficient meanes to saluation. Or, a countercharme against the Romish enchantments, that labour to bewitch the people, with opinion of necessity to be subiect to the Pope of Rome. Wherein is briefely shewed the pith and marrow of the principall bookes written by both sides, touching this matter: with marginall reference to the chapters and sections, where the points are handled more at large to the great ease and satisfaction of the reader. By Anthony Cade, Bachelour of Diuinity. Cade, Anthony, 1564?-1641. 1630 (1630) STC 4327; ESTC S107369 350,088 512

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

though_o we_o can_v point_v out_o the_o time_n when_o every_o point_n begin_v to_o be_v change_v tertullian_n 32_o tertullian_n tertul._n praeser_fw-ge adversus_fw-la haeret._n cap._n 32_o say_v sufficient_o the_o very_a doctrine_n itself_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a by_o the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n thereof_o will_v pronounce_v that_o it_o have_v for_o author_n neither_o any_o apostle_n nor_o any_o apostolical_a man_n if_o 19.8_o if_o mat._n 19.8_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o now_o it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v a_o change_n 11.28_o change_n 1_o cor._n 11.28_o all_o drink_n of_o that_o cup_n now_o all_o must_v not_o all_o than_o pray_v in_o know_v tongue_n with_o understanding_n and_o all_o public_a service_n do_v to_o edification_n 128._o edification_n 1_o cor._n 14._o see_v b._n white_a against_o fisher_n pag._n 128._o this_o be_v alter_v though_o when_o the_o alteration_n begin_v we_o neither_o know_v nor_o need_n take_v pain_n to_o search_v §._o 6._o the_o romanist_n say_v our_o doctrine_n be_v new_a can_v they_o show_v it_o to_o be_v late_a than_o the_o apostle_n time_n we_o hold_v the_o hebrew_n canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o be_v so_o many_o book_n canonical_a as_o the_o hebrew_n and_o with_o they_o the_o father_n account_v canonical_a and_o no_o more_o if_o this_o be_v a_o error_n let_v they_o show_v who_o begin_v it_o and_o when_o as_o we_o can_v show_v when_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v many_o apocryphal_a writing_n be_v add_v to_o the_o canon_n we_o hold_v the_o hebrew_n of_o the_o old_a the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v most_o authentical_a and_o all_o translation_n to_o be_v correct_v by_o they_o who_o begin_v this_o heresy_n and_o when_o they_o prefer_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a before_o they_o contrary_a to_o equity_n and_o antiquity_n we_o commend_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o all_o god_n people_n of_o all_o nation_n in_o all_o language_n we_o hold_v that_o god_n forbid_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a fruit_n of_o faith_n without_o which_o faith_n be_v dead_a we_o administer_v the_o whole_a communion_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o all_o god_n people_n let_v they_o show_v the_o time_n when_o these_o heresy_n or_o abuse_n begin_v or_o else_o either_o cease_v to_o call_v we_o heretic_n for_o they_o or_o grant_v that_o heresy_n may_v creep_v in_o they_o know_v not_o when_o nor_o how_o §._o 7._o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o 433._o d._n favour_n antiquity_n triumph_v over_o novelty_n cap._n 17_o pag._n 433._o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v by_o approve_a history_n the_o age_n and_o time_n when_o many_o of_o the_o foul_a corruption_n become_v notorious_a in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o they_o be_v oppose_v doctor_n favour_n show_v some_o as_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n transubstantiation_n the_o worship_v of_o angel_n a_o old_a heresy_n a_o new_a piety_n the_o substance_n and_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o divine_a worship_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n above_o a_o creature_n the_o worship_n of_o the_o cross_n single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n and_o on_o certain_a day_n seven_o sacrament_n image_n and_o their_o worship_n indulgence_n or_o pardon_n communicate_v without_o the_o cup_n auricular_a confession_n and_o diverse_a other_o thing_n bishop_n usher_n answer_v the_o irish_a jesuite_n challenge_v show_v the_o same_o very_o full_o in_o many_o point_n so_o do_v most_o of_o our_o other_o learned_a author_n and_o most_o plentiful_o in_o a_o continue_a historical_a narration_n that_o learned_a french_a noble_a man_n philip_n morney_n praefat._n morney_n mysterium_fw-la iniquitat_fw-la praefat._n lord_n of_o plessis_n in_o his_o mysterium_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la but_o of_o particular_a point_n i_o shall_v speak_v more_o fit_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n if_o you_o desire_v it_o §._o 8._o and_o now_o for_o a_o conclusion_n of_o this_o point_n and_o for_o full_a answer_n to_o your_o challenge_n of_o antiquity_n i_o demand_v where_o be_v there_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n which_o worship_v image_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v now_o where_o be_v any_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n that_o call_v the_o little_a hone_o their_o lord_n think_v it_o to_o be_v god_n and_o adore_v it_o as_o god_n or_o for_o 12_o hundred_o year_n that_o keep_v their_o god_n in_o a_o box_n and_o carry_v it_o about_o in_o procession_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o appoint_v peculiar_a office_n or_o service_n unto_o it_o and_o without_o receive_v it_o offer_v it_o up_o before_o the_o people_n as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a or_o that_o bereave_v the_o people_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o holy_a communion_n and_o make_v it_o heresy_n to_o teach_v otherwise_o or_o that_o receive_a transubstantiation_n for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n of_o insufficiency_n and_o ambiguity_n and_o hold_v the_o read_n thereof_o dangerous_a to_o the_o faithful_a forbid_v it_o by_o public_a decree_n under_o great_a punishment_n where_o be_v there_o any_o church_n for_o 600_o year_n that_o believe_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n and_o that_o all_o power_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n for_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v derive_v and_o receive_v from_o he_o where_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n any_o church_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v a_o earthly_a prince_n or_o above_o all_o christian_a prince_n gird_v with_o both_o sword_n and_o have_v power_n to_o unbind_v subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o their_o prince_n to_o depose_v prince_n and_o place_v other_o in_o their_o room_n or_o in_o 12_o hundred_o year_n that_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v above_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o above_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o that_o he_o only_o have_v authority_n to_o call_v counsel_n to_o ratify_v of_o nullify_v whatsoever_o please_v he_o in_o they_o or_o that_o he_o can_v dispose_v of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n by_o the_o manner_n or_o measure_n of_o his_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n shut_v purgatory_n and_o open_v heaven_n to_o those_o he_o like_v or_o will_v pay_v for_o it_o make_v saint_n who_o he_o please_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o and_o worship_v and_o who_o he_o please_v send_v down_o to_o hell_n or_o purgatory_n sess_n council_n trident._n sess_n or_o that_o he_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n bind_v where_o god_n have_v loose_v or_o lose_v where_o god_n have_v bind_v as_o in_o matrimonial_a cause_n and_o degree_n in_o diverse_a kind_n of_o oath_n and_o such_o like_a or_o where_o be_v any_o face_n of_o a_o church_n until_o within_o these_o few_o year_n so_o glorious_a with_o a_o princely_a senate_n of_o cardinal_n equal_n if_o not_o superior_n to_o king_n make_v a_o earthly_a kingdom_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o transcendent_a greatness_n of_o the_o triple_a crown_a pope_n 1530._o friar_n begin_v anno_fw-la 1220._o jesuite_n 1530._o those_o swarm_n of_o late_a friar_n and_o late_a jesuite_n and_o seminary_n priest_n which_o some_o make_v to_o be_v the_o locust_n revel_v 9_o 3_o darken_n the_o sun_n and_o the_o air_n luther_n in_o conference_n with_o vergerius_n the_o pope_n nuncio_n among_o other_o thing_n tell_v he_o plain_o none_o can_v call_v his_o doctrine_n new_a 76._o hist_o council_n trent_n lib._n 1._o pag._n 76._o but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o christ_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n live_v as_o now_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n and_o bishop_n do_v to_o conclude_v in_o these_o and_o such_o like_a th●ngs_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o antiquity_n neither_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n otherwise_o then_o darkness_n suceee_v the_o light_n sickness_n succeed_v health_n and_o as_o antichrist_n must_v succeed_v christ_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o may_v sit_v in_o christ_n or_o s._n peter_n seat_n as_o god_n or_o above_o god_n antiquus_fw-la it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v dislike_n then_o disproof_a of_o these_o thing_n but_o when_o you_o say_v the_o most_o of_o the_o corruption_n as_o you_o call_v they_o creep_v in_o secret_o and_o insensible_o you_o seem_v to_o grant_v that_o some_o of_o they_o come_v in_o open_o and_o be_v observe_v antiquissimus_fw-la yea_o and_o strong_o oppose_v too_o as_o our_o learned_a author_n do_v plentiful_o show_v and_o i_o shall_v by_o god_n blessing_n show_v afterward_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_n but_o for_o the_o present_a let_v this_o general_a answer_n satisfy_v your_o general_a doubt_n antiquus_fw-la satisfy_v i_o in_o another_o general_a question_n also_o if_o there_o be_v such_o corruption_n in_o
partiality_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o prove_v no_o more_o than_o the_o excellency_n of_o honourable_a estimation_n the_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o the_o principality_n of_o grace_n and_o be_v far_o short_a of_o prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o power_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n now_o claim_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 56._o b._n carlton_n jurisdiction_n pag._n 55_o 56._o we_o may_v also_o just_o allege_v that_o the_o honour_n and_o title_n that_o other_o bishop_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o great_a virtue_n in_o former_a time_n the_o romist_n of_o these_o latter_a time_n unjust_o draw_v to_o prove_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o that_o sea_n because_o they_o may_v find_v the_o same_o or_o great_a give_v to_o other_o worthy_a bishop_n as_o to_o saint_n ambrose_n to_o who_o 55._o who_o basil_n epist_n 55._o saint_n basil_n writing_n say_v he_o holdeth_z the_o stern_a of_o that_o great_a and_o famous_a ship_n the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n have_v place_v he_o in_o the_o primacy_n and_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o 4._o so_o sidon_n lib._n 6._o ep_n 1_o &_o 4._o sidonius_n apollinaris_n bishop_n of_o arvern_n call_v lupus_n a_o french_a bishop_n pope_n lupus_n and_o his_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o write_v to_o fontellus_fw-la another_o french_a bishop_n comperi_fw-la bishop_n lib._n 7._o ep_n 4._o quod_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la vestri_fw-la patrocinium_fw-la copiosissimumconferre_v vos_fw-la comperi_fw-la say_v he_o great_o rejoice_v that_o he_o find_v he_o do_v abundant_o defend_v his_o apostleship_n and_o again_o accedo_fw-la again_o lib._n 6._o ep_n 7._o ego_fw-la quoque_fw-la ad_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la tui_fw-la noticiam_fw-la accedo_fw-la i_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o your_o apostleship_n amplius_fw-la apostleship_n chrysost_fw-fr de_fw-fr laudibus_fw-la paul_n hom_n 8._o &_o in_o gal._n 2._o erat_fw-la paulus_n princeps_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la honore_fw-la par_fw-fr petro_n ne_fw-la quid_fw-la dicam_fw-la amplius_fw-la saint_n chrysostom_n call_v saint_n paul_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n princeps_fw-la apostle_n ruffin_n histor_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o jacobus_n apostolorum_fw-la princeps_fw-la ruffinus_n give_v saint_n james_n the_o same_o title_n 41._o title_n greg_n in_o 1_o reg._n lib._n 4._o cap_n 4._o paulus_n ad_fw-la christum_fw-la conversus_fw-la caput_fw-la effectus_fw-la est_fw-la nationum_fw-la qui_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la totius_fw-la principatum_fw-la see_v d._n field_n church_n book_n 5._o chap._n 41._o saint_n gregory_n give_v saint_n paul_n the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o that_o he_o obtain_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o title_n do_v the_o father_n give_v unto_o saint_n peter_n beyond_o these_o if_o these_o do_v not_o prove_v any_o general_a jurisdiction_n in_o other_o how_o do_v they_o prove_v it_o in_o saint_n peter_n §._o 12._o but_o what_o need_v we_o stand_v upon_o title_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n give_v to_o saint_n peter_n or_o the_o pope_n when_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o action_n be_v against_o the_o supremacy_n now_o challenge_v remember_v what_o i_o have_v say_v 2._o say_v see_v before_o book_n 1._o chap._n 1_o §._o 2._o before_o of_o the_o father_n mislike_v and_o dissuade_v the_o pope_n assume_v authority_n in_o the_o small_a matter_n as_o polycarpus_n dissuade_v anicetus_n polycrates_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o irenaeus_n with_o his_o french_a bishop_n in_o the_o west_n dissuade_v victor_n from_o new_a unusual_a uniustifiable_a course_n 3._o ibid._n §._o 3._o other_o father_n afterward_o plain_o resist_v and_o reject_v the_o pope_n judgement_n and_o authority_n as_o the_o holy_a martyr_n cyprian_n with_o many_o whole_a counsel_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n saint_n basil_n the_o great_a and_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n i_o show_v you_o also_o how_o three_o pope_n in_o succession_n zozimus_n boniface_n and_o celestine_n above_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n claim_v their_o superiority_n and_o privilege_n not_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o canon_n the_o holy_a learned_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n reject_v find_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o any_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o their_o church_n keep_v or_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n or_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n so_o that_o final_o condemn_v that_o canon_n to_o be_v countefet_fw-fr and_o the_o claim_v authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v new_a and_o unlawful_a they_o make_v decree_n against_o the_o pope_n claim_n conformable_a to_o their_o own_o decree_n and_o custom_n of_o former_a time_n 4._o time_n ibid._n sect_n 4._o i_o show_v you_o further_o by_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o your_o own_o gregory_n condemn_v the_o title_n and_o supremacy_n which_o john_n then_o labour_v for_o and_o which_o your_o pope_n now_o take_v unto_o they_o he_o i_o say_v condemn_v they_o for_o antichristian_a and_o say_v none_o of_o his_o ancestor_n do_v ever_o claym_v they_o 5._o they_o ibid._n sect_n 5._o i_o show_v you_o also_o how_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o britain_n with_o many_o counsel_n one_o at_o constantinople_n another_o at_o frankfurt_n another_o at_o paris_n with_o who_o also_o join_v charles_n the_o great_a and_o ludovicus_fw-la pius_fw-la beside_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o their_o book_n at_o that_o time_n oppose_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o counsel_n and_o his_o authority_n in_o impose_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o these_o and_o of_o the_o succeed_a time_n i_o have_v speak_v etc._n speak_v see_v ibid._n sect_n 9_o 10._o etc._n etc._n in_o my_o opinion_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v any_o moderate_a man_n and_o upon_o occasion_n i_o have_v much_o more_o to_o say_v but_o read_v advise_o at_o your_o leisure_n b._n jewel_n b._n morton_n d._n field_n and_o our_o other_o learned_a protestant_n or_o our_o most_o judicious_a king_n james_n his_o book_n or_o read_v only_o b._n bilson_n book_n 8._o book_n b._n bilson_n the_o true_a difference_n between_o christian_a subjection_n &_o unchristian_a rebellion_n special_o the_o first_o part_n p._n 94._o &_o seq_n in_o 8._o who_o write_v full_o enough_o and_o punctual_o of_o these_o matter_n and_o if_o you_o be_v not_o prejudicate_v and_o obstinate_a beyond_o all_o reason_n you_o will_v be_v satisfy_v only_o i_o will_v add_v here_o for_o the_o present_a one_o thing_n of_o the_o african_a church_n about_o saint_n cyprian_n time_n and_o after_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o great_a that_o on_o the_o one_o side_n as_o cassander_n 54._o cassander_n cassander_n consultation_n artic_n 7._o pag_n 54._o observe_v pope_n steven_n repel_v saint_n cyprian_n à_fw-la communione_fw-la suâ_fw-la from_o communion_n with_o he_o 2●●●_n see_v ●efo●●_n ch●p_v 2●●●_n admit_v not_o to_o his_o speech_n the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n come_v from_o saint_n cyprian_n as_o legate_n yea_o and_o forbid_v all_o his_o fraternity_n to_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o house_n deny_v they_o not_o only_a peace_n &_o communion_n but_o also_o tectum_fw-la &_o hospitium_fw-la houseroom_n &_o lodging_n call_v cyprian_n pseudo_fw-la hristum_fw-la &_o dolosum_fw-la operari●m_fw-la a_o false_a christ_n and_o deceitful_a worker_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n saint_n cyprian_n and_o the_o african_n stand_v out_o think_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o italian_n in_o the_o wrong_n neither_o sue_v they_o neither_o care_v they_o for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n doctor_n harding_n say_v 290._o say_v harding_n answer_v to_o jewel_n challenge_v pag._n 290._o the_o whole_a church_n of_o africa_n withdraw_v itself_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n of_o appeal_v and_o so_o continue_v in_o schism_n a_o hundred_o year_n and_o in_o that_o time_n be_v bring_v into_o miserable_a captivity_n by_o the_o vandal_n harding_n may_v remember_v that_o rome_n itself_o about_o the_o same_o season_n in_o the_o space_n of_o 140._o year_n be_v bring_v to_o miserable_a calamity_n be_v six_o time_n take_v by_o the_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a enemy_n ib._n enemy_n b._n jewel_n ib._n after_o which_o time_n of_o 100_o year_n eulabius_n b._n of_o carthage_n condemn_v his_o predecessor_n disobedience_n and_o seek_v reconciliation_n to_o the_o pope_n do_v by_o public_a instrument_n or_o write_v submit_v and_o rejoine_v the_o african_a church_n to_o the_o roman_a and_o boniface_n the_o pope_n write_v thereof_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n exciting_a he_o to_o rejoice_v and_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n for_o this_o reconciliation_n say_v that_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o his_o fellow_n whereof_o saint_n augustine_n be_v one_o be_v set_v on_o by_o the_o devil_n have_v
carry_v away_o of_o the_o whole_a form_n of_o the_o discourse_n the_o style_n in_o treatise_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o require_v to_o be_v rhetorical_a to_o please_v the_o ear_n or_o as_o sweetmeat_n to_o delight_v the_o taste_n but_o scholastical_a logical_a or_o theological_n that_o be_v intelligible_a and_o significant_a to_o inform_v the_o understanding_n and_o convict_v the_o conscience_n which_o if_o it_o perform_v it_o be_v all_o that_o i_o affect_v or_o thou_o may_v in_o reason_n expect_v in_o such_o a_o work_n and_o now_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o diligent_a read_n and_o serious_a consideration_n wish_v thou_o often_o to_o commend_v both_o the_o writer_n and_o reader_n to_o god_n in_o thy_o prayer_n thou_o for_o christ_n jesus_n anthony_n cade_z a_o table_n of_o the_o chief_a head_n and_o matter_n according_a to_o the_o several_a chapter_n section_n and_o page_n the_o first_o book_n the_o first_o chapter_n the_o first_o ordinary_n and_o great_a objection_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n antiquity_n and_o our_o english_a church_n novelty_n paragraph_n §_o 1alleadge_v odious_o against_o the_o protestant_n and_o glorious_o for_o the_o roman_n page_n 1_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o sincere_o answer_v as_o vain_a for_o that_o the_o protestant_n firm_o retain_v the_o true_a ancient_a save_a faith_n page_n 2_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o and_o only_a weed_n out_o the_o error_n and_o corruption_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o superseminated_a tare_n in_o god_n field_n page_n 3_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o as_o hezekias_n and_o other_o good_a prince_n do_v very_o religious_o in_o their_o time_n page_n 4_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o so_o that_o the_o english_a church_n differ_v not_o otherwise_o from_o the_o romish_a then_o as_o a_o field_n well_o weed_v and_o govern_v from_o a_o field_n still_o overgrowen_v with_o weed_n or_o as_o naaman_n cleanse_v from_o the_o same_o naaman_n former_o leprous_a page_n 4_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o and_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o good_a sound_a thing_n find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o from_o the_o papacy_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v the_o church_n but_o a_o domineer_a faction_n or_o disease_n in_o the_o church_n page_n 5_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n suffer_v not_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o papacy_n but_o for_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o protestant_n bold_a page_n 6_o hereunto_o the_o reader_n may_v add_v that_o which_o be_v write_v chap._n 3._o §_o 8._o pag._n 27._o that_o this_o newness_n of_o religion_n be_v retort_v upon_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o now_o hold_v many_o point_n new_a never_o hold_v by_o any_o church_n in_o former_a time_n some_o of_o they_o not_o in_o 600_o year_n some_o not_o in_o 1000_o some_o not_o in_o 12_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o after_o christ_n chap._n 2._o of_o error_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o any_o particular_a church_n may_v in_o time_n receive_v error_n and_o corruption_n page_n 9_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o as_o do_v those_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n page_n 10_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o and_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n page_n 11_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o for_o which_o we_o find_v many_o reason_n in_o the_o scripture_n page_n 12_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o except_v page_n 14_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o yea_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v warn_v in_o scripture_n to_o take_v heed_n lest_o be_v be_v cut_v off_o for_o its_o corruption_n page_n 14_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o and_o it_o have_v be_v corrupt_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la page_n 15_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o yea_o rome_n be_v confess_v by_o the_o very_a romish_a doctor_n to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o damnable_a mystical_a babylon_n page_n 16_o paragraph_n §_o 9_o and_o that_o rome_n must_v be_v the_o send_v of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n page_n 17_o paragraph_n §_o 10_o and_o rome_n be_v that_o city_n that_o must_v be_v taint_v with_o foul_a impiety_n as_o well_o forego_v as_o follow_v antichrist_n all_o which_o their_o own_o romish_a doctor_n confirm_v page_n 19_o chap._n 3_o of_o the_o time_n when_o corruption_n come_v into_o the_o romish_a church_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o a_o designation_n of_o the_o time_n when_o corruption_n begin_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n require_v page_n 20_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o often_o require_v heretofore_o and_o often_o answer_v page_n 20_o 21_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o many_o corruption_n creep_v in_o secret_o and_o insensible_o as_o in_o humane_a society_n disease_n in_o the_o body_n tare_n and_o weed_n in_o the_o field_n page_n 21_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o the_o romanist_n acknowledge_v many_o change_n whereof_o they_o can_v show_v the_o beginning_n page_n 23_o 24_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o such_o thing_n be_v best_a discern_v by_o their_o difference_n from_o the_o first_o pure_a doctrine_n page_n 25_o 26_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o the_o romans_z can_v find_v the_o beginning_n of_o our_o doctrine_n on_o this_o side_n the_o scripture_n page_n 26_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o we_o can_v &_o do_v show_v the_o beginning_n of_o many_o of_o they_o page_n 27_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n hold_v the_o now_o romish_a doctrine_n but_o only_o that_o church_n itself_o in_o those_o latter_a time_n page_n 27_o chap._n 4._o of_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n long_o before_o luther_n time_n see_v write_v against_o and_o reformation_n wish_v for_o they_o page_n 30_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o a_o historical_a narration_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n golden_a page_n 31_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o but_o afterward_o peep_v up_o some_o seed_n of_o corruption_n mislike_v of_o many_o in_o the_o east_n south_n and_o west_n church_n page_n 32_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o a_o foul_a matter_n of_o three_o pope_n allege_v a_o counterfeit_n canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o their_o jurisdiction_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o africa_n withstand_v page_n 34_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o gregory_n the_o great_a write_v sharp_o against_o the_o title_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n use_n page_n 35_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n church_n and_o of_o france_n germany_n and_o britain_n oppose_v the_o pope_n about_o jmage_n counsel_n against_o counsel_n page_n 36_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o many_o thought_n antichrist_n be_v then_o bear_v constantine_n donation_n &_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n than_o first_o see_v page_n 37_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o a_o deluge_n of_o wickedness_n in_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o age_n as_o bellarmine_n baronius_n genebrard_n etc._n etc._n record_n page_n 38_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o after_o a_o thousand_o year_n great_a innudation_n of_o evil_n the_o wicked_a pope_n silvester_n 2_o and_o benedict_n 9_o a_o child_n of_o about_o 10_o year_n old_a then_o cardinal_n arise_v page_n 40_o paragraph_n §_o 9_o the_o sultan_n subdue_v many_o country_n in_o the_o east_n the_o clergy_n be_v most_o wicked_a in_o the_o west_n letter_n from_o hell_n to_o the_o clergy_n anti-popes_n and_o anti-caesars_n rebellion_n make_v piety_n hildebrand_n dictate_v foundation_n of_o a_o new_a earthly-church-kingdome_n page_n 42_o paragraph_n §_o 10_o the_o testimony_n of_o friar_n onuphrius_n that_o hildebrand_n that_o be_v gregory_n 7._o be_v the_o first_o raiser_n of_o the_o pope_n princedom_n about_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n many_o historian_n speak_v of_o his_o divellishnesse_n page_n 45_o paragraph_n §_o 11_o campian_n historian_n reject_v by_o his_o own_o fellow_n page_n 47_o paragraph_n §_o 12_o grave_a divine_n against_o romish_a corruption_n bernard_n sarisburiensis_n grosthead_n occam_n cesenas_n clemangis_fw-la gerson_n cameracensis_n valla_n etc._n etc._n page_n 49_o paragraph_n §_o 13_o these_o and_o many_o other_o write_v not_o only_o against_o corruption_n of_o manner_n but_o of_o doctrine_n also_o schoolmen_n philosophical_a divinity_n corrupt_v pure_a doctrine_n doctrine_n frame_v to_o maintain_v wealth_n and_o greatness_n page_n 53_o paragraph_n §_o 14_o particular_a doctrine_n wherein_o learned_a man_n differ_v from_o the_o pope_n faction_n page_n 55_o paragraph_n §_o 15_o oxford_n alone_o afford_v many_o learned_a man_n oppose_v romish_n corruption_n page_n 58_o paragraph_n §_o 16_o reformation_n be_v seek_v for_o and_o promise_v by_o some_o pope_n as_o very_o needful_a but_o can_v not_o final_o be_v attain_v the_o scripture_n disgrace_v tradition_n uphold_v romish_a doctrine_n page_n 65_o chap._n 5._o a_o note_n of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n wherein_o the_o protestant_n and_o romanist_n full_o agree_v show_v also_o the_o romish_a addition_n whereunto_o the_o protestant_n can_v agree_v as_o be_v not_o ancient_a not_o true_a or_o not_o needful_a but_o very_o corrupt_a page_n 70_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o of_o one_o god_n in_o substance_n and_o three_o person_n 2_o canonical_a scripture_n page_n 70_o 71_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o of_o the_o original_a hebrew_n and_o greek_a
authentic_a 4_o of_o the_o word_n write_v be_v the_o sure_a ground_n of_o faith_n 5_o of_o tradition_n 6_o the_o three_o creed_n page_n 74_o 76_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o of_o god_n worship_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n page_n 77_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o of_o prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n 9_o and_o to_o god_n alone_o 77_o 10_o of_o christ_n our_o mediator_n 11_o of_o saint_n pray_v for_o us._n 12_o of_o honour_n due_a to_o saint_n depart_v page_n 78_o paragraph_n 13_o of_o justification_n by_o christ_n merit_n page_n 79_o paragraph_n 14_o of_o man_n inherent_a righteousness_n &_o sanctification_n page_n 79_o paragraph_n 15_o of_o contrition_n confession_n satisfaction_n and_o vivification_n etc._n etc._n page_n 79_o paragraph_n 16_o of_o such_o good_a work_n as_o god_n have_v prescribe_v page_n 81_o paragraph_n 17_o of_o freewill_n page_n 81_o paragraph_n 18_o that_o work_v do_v by_o grace_n please_v god_n and_o be_v reward_v of_o he_o page_n 82_o paragraph_n 19_o of_o two_o sacrament_n seal_n and_o conduit_n of_o justify_v grace_n page_n 82_o paragraph_n 20_o that_o to_o the_o well_o prepare_a receiver_n god_n give_v as_o well_o the_o justify_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n as_o the_o outward_a element_n page_n 82_o paragraph_n 21_o that_o the_o worthy_a communicant_a real_o partake_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n page_n 82_o paragraph_n 22_o of_o heaven_n for_o the_o bless_a hell_n for_o the_o damn_a page_n 83_o paragraph_n 23_o of_o christ_n satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n page_n 83_o paragraph_n 24_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n militant_a church_n upon_o earth_n page_n 83_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n in_o general_n justify_v by_o two_o cardinal_n contarene_n and_o campeggio_n and_o our_o liturgy_n by_o pope_n pius_n 4._o page_n 83_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o but_o the_o pope_n reach_n further_o at_o a_o earthy_a church_n kingdom_n prove_v page_n 85_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o and_o they_o challenge_v a_o supremacy_n over_o all_o christian_n and_o church_n in_o the_o world_n page_n 89_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o more_o special_o over_o the_o clergy_n exempt_n they_o from_o be_v subject_n to_o prince_n either_o for_o bodily_a punishment_n or_o good_n page_n 90_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o yea_o a_o supremacy_n over_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o their_o state_n to_o depose_v dispose_n and_o transpose_v they_o and_o to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o rebel_v etc._n etc._n hence_o come_v treason_n etc._n etc._n page_n 92_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o to_o dissolve_v bond_n oath_n and_o league_n page_n 95_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o to_o give_v dispensation_n to_o contract_v matrimony_n in_o degree_n by_o god_n law_n forbid_v &_o to_o dissolve_v lawful_a matrim_n page_n 96_o paragraph_n §_o 9_o and_o other_o dispensation_n and_o exemption_n from_o law_n page_n 99_o chap._n 6._o paragraph_n of_o policy_n to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n princedom_n and_o wealth_n page_n 102_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o deprive_v man_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n page_n 102_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o and_o of_o ordinary_a orderly_a preach_n in_o stead_n whereof_o the_o pope_n set_v up_o ambulatory_a preacher_n monk_n and_o friar_n to_o preach_v what_o be_v good_a for_o his_o state_n without_o control_n of_o church-minister_n officer_n or_o bishop_n page_n 103_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o schoolman_n too-much_o subtlety_n and_o philosophy_n fill_v man_n head_n darken_a and_o corrupt_v wholesome_a theology_n page_n 109_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o jesuit_n and_o their_o original_n after_o luther_n time_n note_v their_o seminary_n emission_n faculty_n insinuation_n and_o most_o politic_a employment_n page_n 110_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o cardinal_n a_o most_o powerful_a and_o politic_a invention_n page_n 114_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o provision_n for_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o all_o sort_n high_a and_o low_a by_o monastery_n to_o sustain_v and_o satisfy_v all_o humour_n page_n 118_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o auricular_a confession_n discover_v many_o secret_n and_o find_v humour_n fit_a for_o all_o employment_n etc._n etc._n page_n 120_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o her_o policy_n to_o get_v wealth_n page_n 121_o paragraph_n §_o 9_o purgatory_n a_o rich_a thing_n page_n 122_o paragraph_n §_o 10_o so_o be_v indulgence_n or_o pardon_n page_n 122_o paragraph_n §_o 11_o and_o jubile_n page_n 123_o paragraph_n §_o 12_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n touch_v merit_n and_o justification_n etc._n etc._n page_n 125_o paragraph_n §_o 13_o thing_n hallow_v by_o the_o pope_n page_n 126_o paragraph_n §_o 14_o extraordinary_a exaction_n most_o grievous_a to_o nation_n most_o rich_a to_o the_o pope_n page_n 126_o the_o second_o book_n chap._n 1._o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v a_o discourse_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o full_o answer_v that_o common_a question_n of_o the_o romist_n where_o be_v the_o protestant_n church_n before_o luther_n time_n this_o chapter_n be_v large_a and_o for_o better_a satisfaction_n and_o perspicuity_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o section_n the_o first_o section_n show_v how_o visible_a the_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v page_n 136_o the_o second_o show_v that_o the_o protestant_n church_n have_v evermore_o be_v so_o visible_a as_o the_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o necessary_a doctrine_n first_o with_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o afterward_o also_o with_o the_o greek_a and_o eastern_a church_n 149_o the_o three_o section_n show_v the_o waldenses_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n which_o the_o protestant_n maintain_v and_o deliver_v a_o sufficient_a historical_a discourse_n of_o the_o waldenses_n 155_o the_o four_o section_n show_v that_o our_o church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v all_o one_o in_o substance_n till_o luther_n time_n for_o even_o till_o then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n continue_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n except_v the_o popacy_n and_o the_o maintainer_n thereof_o which_o be_v rather_o a_o sore_a or_o a_o faction_n in_o the_o church_n than_o any_o true_a or_o sound_a part_n thereof_o 195_o chap._n 1._o these_o principal_a section_n be_v also_o subdivide_v into_o subsection_n and_o those_o into_o small_a paragraphes_n note_v thus_o §_o sect._n 1._o subsect_n 1._o so_o the_o first_o section_n which_o show_v how_o visible_a the_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v two_o subsection_n the_o first_o subsection_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o show_v a_o object_v description_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o the_o perpetual_a succession_n and_o visibility_n thereof_o page_n 136_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o that_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o our_o church_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o roman_a notwithstanding_o some_o grow_a corru●tions_n page_n 138_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o after_o that_o coruption_n grow_v intolerable_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o many_o mislike_v they_o and_o hold_v the_o truth_n page_n 138_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n can_v never_o be_v visible_a to_o man_n at_o once_o but_o part_n of_o it_o may_v and_o must_v page_n 139_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o the_o promise_n of_o purity_n and_o eternal_a life_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o call_v but_o to_o the_o few_o choose_v who_o true_a faith_n to_o man_n be_v invisible_a though_o their_o person_n and_o profession_n be_v visible_a page_n 140_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o and_o so_o much_o bellarmine_n and_o many_o other_o romanist_n yield_v page_n 141_o subsect_n 2_o the_o second_o subsection_n 143_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o some_o promise_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o outward_a spread_n of_o the_o church_n and_o some_o the_o inward_a grace_n page_n 143_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o the_o outward_a spread_a and_o glorious_a visibility_n be_v not_o at_o all_o time_n alike_o page_n 144_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o so_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o saint_n austen_n teach_v by_o compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n page_n 145_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o many_o father_n and_o romish_a doctor_n say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n will_v be_v obscure_a and_o hardly_o visible_a page_n 145_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o which_o say_v valentinianus_n and_o many_o father_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o arrian_n time_n page_n 146_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o the_o jesuite_n valentinianus_n grant_v as_o much_o invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o protestant_n desire_n page_n 147_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o observation_n out_o of_o his_o grant_n page_n 148_o chap._n 1._o sect._n 2._o subsect_n 1_o the_o second_o section_n show_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v evermore_o be_v so_o visible_a as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v two_o subsection_n paragraph_n the_o first_o subsection_n concern_v the_o first_o time_n page_n 149_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o show_v that_o the_o protestant_n labour_v sincere_o to_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o scripture_n and_o
paragraph_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o father_n and_o protestant_n and_o of_o their_o contention_n page_n 236_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o many_o father_n be_v confess_v by_o all_o side_n to_o have_v hold_v some_o erroneous_a opinion_n which_o none_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n be_v good_a catholic_n christian_n and_o our_o predecessor_n page_n 236_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o many_o difference_n also_o be_v note_v among_o romish_a doctor_n which_o yet_o hinder_v they_o not_o from_o be_v all_o account_v catholic_n page_n 243_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n be_v nothing_o so_o great_a or_o many_o as_o those_o afore_o note_v of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o romish_a the_o especial_a one_o about_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n be_v much_o less_o than_o it_o seem_v page_n 248_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o the_o pope_n unwillingness_n to_o reform_v manifest_a abuse_n by_o the_o way_n of_o general_a counsel_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o difference_n in_o reform_a church_n when_o each_o several_a state_n be_v compel_v to_o reform_v a_o part_n without_o sufficient_a general_a consultation_n with_o other_o nation_n page_n 250_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o the_o protestant_n contention_n for_o god_n cause_n as_o they_o take_v it_o be_v nothing_o so_o hot_a or_o troublesome_a be_v the_o contention_n of_o many_o ancient_a holy_a father_n have_v be_v about_o small_a matter_n view_v the_o example_n page_n 253_o chap._n 4._o paragraph_n of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v the_o soundness_n and_o purity_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o church_n by_o page_n 261_o this_o chapter_n have_v four_o section_n page_n 261_o paragraph_n the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o rule_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n page_n 261_o paragraph_n the_o second_o of_o the_o rule_n enlarge_v and_o approve_v in_o this_o age._n page_n 268_o paragraph_n the_o three_o of_o objection_n arise_v from_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o their_o answer_n page_n 280_o paragraph_n the_o four_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v still_o to_o they_o that_o hold_v this_o rule_n page_n 288_o the_o first_o section_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o the_o rule_n in_o general_n page_n 261_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o open_v by_o distinction_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n page_n 262_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o a_o necessity_n of_o a_o short_a rule_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n page_n 262_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o this_o rule_n be_v describe_v by_o s._n paul_n page_n 263_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v the_o most_o necessary_a fundamental_a point_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o baptize_v they_o page_n 265_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o the_o like_a practice_n use_v by_o the_o follow_a primitive_a church_n to_o their_o catechumeni_fw-la before_o baptism_n page_n 266_o the_o second_o section_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o the_o rule_n enlarge_v and_o approve_v in_o this_o age._n page_n 268_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o by_o azorius_fw-la out_o of_o the_o schoole-divines_a in_o 14_o article_n page_n 269_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o some_o observation_n and_o censure_n of_o those_o 14_o article_n page_n 272_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o the_o rule_n set_v down_o by_o bellarmine_n more_o brief_o page_n 273_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o by_o doctor_n field_n far_o more_o sufficient_o in_o 6_o article_n with_o his_o judgement_n of_o the_o deduction_n therefrom_o evident_a or_o obscure_a page_n 274_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o bishop_n usher_v distinction_n of_o superstruction_n upon_o the_o foundation_n page_n 277_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o consequent_n of_o this_o doctrine_n page_n 278_o the_o three_o section_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o objection_n if_o hold_v the_o foundation_n will_v serve_v than_o we_o may_v easy_o obtain_v salvation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n page_n 280_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o answer_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v many_o thing_n which_o by_o consequent_a destroy_v the_o foundation_n by_o the_o most_o moderate_a master_n hooker_n judgement_n page_n 281_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o objection_n this_o cross_v what_o be_v say_v before_o that_o many_o before_o luther_n time_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n answ_n no_o for_o they_o live_v in_o those_o error_n of_o ignorance_n not_o obstinacy_n and_o not_o know_v any_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o they_o page_n 282_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o such_o man_n by_o particular_a repentance_n of_o sin_n know_v and_o general_a repentance_n of_o unknown_a may_v by_o god_n mercy_n be_v save_v page_n 284_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o observation_n hereof_o page_n 285_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o other_o learned_a protestant_n join_v in_o opinion_n with_o master_n hooker_n page_n 286_o the_o four_o section_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n or_o great_a profit_n of_o preach_v even_o to_o they_o that_o be_v well_o ground_v in_o all_o necessary_a principle_n page_n 288_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o as_o israel_n need_v all_o help_n after_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n and_o all_o be_v too_o little_a page_n 289_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o the_o profit_n of_o preach_v in_o general_n page_n 290_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o some_o particular_n for_o continual_a spiritual_a food_n cordial_a medicine_n and_o comfort_n memory_n armour_n etc._n etc._n page_n 290_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o the_o continual_a need_n thereof_o be_v find_v in_o all_o church_n plant_v even_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o their_o time_n page_n 292_o chap._n 4._o paragraph_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o protestant_n bishop_n and_o minister_n from_o the_o apostle_n page_n 296_o paragraph_n section_n 1._o the_o necessity_n thereof_o urge_v without_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o church_n page_n 296_o paragraph_n 2_o this_o succession_n be_v clamourous_o deny_v to_o protestant_n page_n 299_o paragraph_n 3_o but_o manifest_o prove_v and_o the_o slander_v confute_v page_n 300_o paragraph_n 4_o particular_o in_o cranmer_n our_o first_o archbishop_n page_n 302_o paragraph_n 5_o in_o other_o bishop_n of_o king_n henry_n 8_o his_o time_n page_n 304_o paragraph_n 6_o and_o of_o king_n edward_n 6._o and_o of_o queen_n mary_n time_n page_n 306_o paragraph_n 7_o and_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n page_n 306_o paragraph_n 8_o the_o false_a report_n whereof_o do_v alienate_v many_o from_o the_o reform_a religion_n page_n 309_o paragraph_n 9_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o sufficient_a ordination_n of_o minister_n in_o foreign_a reform_a church_n page_n 310_o paragraph_n 10_o which_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a page_n 312_o chap._n 6._o paragraph_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n challenge_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n page_n 1_o paragraph_n §_o 1_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o urge_v as_o the_o main_a pillar_n of_o religion_n page_n 1_o paragraph_n §_o 2_o the_o matter_n and_o method_n of_o the_o answer_v propound_v page_n 4_o paragraph_n §_o 3_o the_o ancient_a church_n yield_v to_o rome_n as_o the_o great_a and_o most_o honourable_a city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o have_v the_o dignity_n of_o one_o of_o the_o five_o patriarck_n page_n 5_o paragraph_n §_o 4_o and_o among_o the_o patriarch_n sometime_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a place_n page_n 6_o paragraph_n §_o 5_o which_o dignity_n the_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n of_o follow_v pope_n have_v much_o impair_v page_n 8_o paragraph_n §_o 6_o and_o have_v challenge_v that_o dignity_n which_o be_v ancient_o yield_v unto_o their_o predecessor_n for_o their_o sanctity_n and_o for_o politic_a reason_n and_o much_o more_o also_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o bellarmine_n gather_v the_o pith_n of_o all_o learned_a writer_n can_v find_v no_o strength_n in_o they_o by_o any_o scripture_n to_o main_a the_o papacy_n as_o in_o their_o chief_a place_n matth._n 16.18_o page_n 11_o paragraph_n §_o 7_o and_o john_n 21.15_o etc._n etc._n page_n 16_o paragraph_n §_o 8_o observe_v the_o romish_a strange_a extraction_n out_o of_o the_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n page_n 18_o paragraph_n §_o 9_o and_o other_o learned-foolish_a allegation_n of_o other_o scripture_n page_n 20_o paragraph_n §_o 10_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n page_n 23_o paragraph_n §_o 11_o and_o the_o father_n be_v urge_v for_o it_o vain_o beyond_o their_o meaning_n page_n 24_o paragraph_n §_o 12_o the_o father_n be_v manifest_o against_o it_o page_n 29_o paragraph_n §_o 13_o saint_n peter_n prerogative_n be_v personal_a and_o descend_v not_o to_o his_o successor_n page_n 32_o paragraph_n §_o 14_o the_o conclusion_n collect_v the_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n brief_o and_o justify_v the_o protestant_n page_n 35_o chap._n 7._o of_o the_o pope_n infallible_a judgement_n in_o guide_v the_o church_n by_o true_a doctrine_n paragraph_n §_o 1_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n or_o father_n or_o by_o the_o analogy_n to_o the_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a
boniface_n 3_o and_o sabellicus_n 8.6_o against_o all_o who_o bellarmine_n strive_v in_o vain_a in_o apologia_fw-la pro_fw-la torto_fw-la see_v b._n andrew_n ad_fw-la m._n torti_n librum_fw-la responsio_fw-la pag._n 329._o &_o seq_fw-la and_o ad_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la bellarmini_fw-la apologium_fw-la responsio_fw-la pag._n 277._o &_o seq_fw-la and_o b._n morton_n appeal_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o universal_a bishop_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o title_n in_o aftertime_n give_v a_o good_a colour_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o claimed-dominion_n over_o all_o christian_a church_n 18._o usher_n c._n 1._o §._o 18._o so_o that_o within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n doubtless_o the_o seed_n of_o much_o evil_n be_v sow_v and_o antichrist_n conceive_v though_o not_o yet_o bear_v for_o in_o all_o those_o six_o hundred_o year_n no_o man_n can_v true_o be_v call_v papist_n either_o for_o hold_v this_o usurpation_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o 27_o article_n which_o bishop_n jewel_n learned_o defend_v against_o mr._n harding_n §._o 5._o etc._n usher_n ib_a cap._n 2._o §_o 4_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o succeed_v time_n the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o britain_n oppose_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o image_n as_o the_o african_a bishop_n before_o have_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o apeale_v for_o in_o anno_fw-la 754_o a_o synod_n of_o 338_o bishop_n at_o constantinople_n have_v abrogate_a all_o image_n save_v that_o one_o image_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o our_o saviour_n ordain_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n to_o represent_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 587_o report_n as_o our_o english_a history_n report_n by_o another_o synod_n call_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a establish_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n which_o council_n and_o image-worship_n our_o english_a church_n execrate_v and_o our_o alcuinus_fw-la write_v a_o book_n against_o it_o which_o he_o carry_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o prince_n to_o the_o k._n of_o france_n the_o same_o second_o council_n of_o nice_n be_v condemn_v also_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o frankfort_n upon_o mene_n in_o the_o year_n 794._o as_o also_o by_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o lodovicus_n pius_n his_o son_n and_o in_o this_o lodovicus_n his_o time_n be_v another_o synod_n hold_v at_o paris_n anno_fw-la 821._o which_v condemn_v the_o same_o second_o of_o nice_a with_o the_o image_n worship_n and_o argue_v the_o pope_n of_o error_n therein_o now_o to_o say_v these_o counsel_n that_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n judgement_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o thus_o it_o appear_v still_o that_o the_o prince_n and_o bishop_n of_o britain_n france_n and_o germany_n reject_v at_o once_o both_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o corrupt_a council_n and_o also_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o his_o authority_n over_o they_o as_o the_o eastern_a and_o the_o southern_a african_a bishop_n have_v do_v before_o baronius_n further_o add_v seq_n baronius_n anno_fw-la 794._o nu_fw-la 36.39_o &_o seq_n that_o many_o learned_a and_o famous_a man_n live_v then_o in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o age_n follow_v great_o grudge_v at_o and_o sharp_o write_v against_o that_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o image-worship_n by_o it_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n confirm_v many_o of_o who_o name_n he_o recite_v and_o cite_v their_o word_n §._o 6._o in_o these_o time_n many_o author_n write_v that_o the_o world_n opinion_n be_v that_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v yet_o that_o he_o be_v yet_o but_o a_o infant_n not_o able_a to_o subdue_v the_o nation_n until_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n plant_v the_o church_n for_o till_o that_o time_n satan_n be_v not_o let_v loose_a revel_v 20.7_o 18.23_o esay_n 1.21_o revel_v 17.2_o &_o 18.23_o 8._o the_o faithful_a city_n begin_v to_o be_v a_o harlot_n and_o great_a babylon_n prostitute_v itself_o but_o can_v not_o yet_o inebriate_a the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o her_o cup_n of_o fornication_n till_o that_o time_n come_v but_o these_o preparation_n must_v go_v before_o as_o do_v also_o the_o publish_n to_o the_o world_n of_o constantine_n donation_n long_o since_o make_v as_o it_o be_v pretend_v but_o now_o first_o know_v to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o pope_n large_a temporal_a dominion_n and_o also_o the_o come_n abroad_o of_o the_o decretable_a epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n long_o since_o also_o say_v to_o be_v write_v but_o never_o before_o know_v to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o pope_n great_a spiritual_a dominion_n both_o which_o be_v condemn_v as_o mere_a counterfeit_n by_o many_o learned_a man_n yea_o by_o many_o of_o their_o own_o side_n §._o 7._o templi_fw-la sigonius_n l_o 6._o de_fw-la regno_fw-la italiae_fw-la werner_n ●ascil_n temp_n aetat_fw-la 6._o circa_fw-la annum_fw-la 894_o et_fw-la ●74_n bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n l_o 4._o c_o 12._o verbis_fw-la ult._n nullum_fw-la saeculum_fw-la indoctius_fw-la aut_fw-la infaelicius_fw-la baronius_n tomo_fw-la 10._o anno_fw-la 900._o §._o 1._o saeculum_fw-la svi_fw-la asperitate_fw-la ac_fw-la boni_fw-la sterilitate_fw-la ferreun_fw-mi malique_fw-la exundant●●_n deformitate_fw-la plumbeum_fw-la ●●que_fw-la nopia_fw-la scriptorum_fw-la obscurum_fw-la abominatio_fw-la desolationis_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la mirum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la secuta_fw-la mox_fw-la fuerit_fw-la desolatio_fw-la templi_fw-la but_o the_o succeed_a age_n exceed_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n both_o by_o the_o iniquity_n of_o prince_n and_o madness_n of_o people_n as_o sigonius_n wernerus_n and_o all_o other_o record_n so_o open_o wicked_a that_o baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n can_v neither_o hide_v nor_o deny_v it_o bellarmine_n say_v no_o age_n be_v more_o unlearned_a nor_o more_o if_o unlucky_a baronius_n say_v they_o be_v iron_n age_n for_o barrenness_n of_o goodness_n leaden_a age_n for_o abundance_n of_o evil_a age_n of_o darkness_n for_o scarcity_n of_o writer_n which_o he_o tell_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o story_n lest_o a_o weak_a man_n see_v in_o the_o story_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n shall_v be_v offend_v and_o not_o rather_o wonder_v that_o there_o follow_v not_o immediate_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o baronius_n anno_fw-la 912._o §_o 8._o lament_n thus_o o_o what_o a_o face_n be_v then_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n how_o filthy_a when_o the_o most_o rich_a and_o withal_o the_o most_o sordid_a whore_n domineer_v at_o rome_n by_o who_o pleasure_n bishop_n sea_n be_v change_v bishop_n place_v and_o which_o be_v horrible_a to_o be_v hear_v or_o speak_v their_o sweetheart_n false_a bishop_n be_v intrude_v into_o peter_n seat_n which_o be_v for_o no_o other_o end_v record_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o roman_a bishop_n but_o only_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o time_n and_o a_o little_a after_o then_o plain_o as_o appear_v christ_n be_v in_o a_o deep_a sleep_n in_o the_o ship_n when_o by_o these_o strong_a wind_n blow_v the_o ship_n be_v near_o cover_v with_o wave_n he_o sleep_v i_o say_v when_o seem_v not_o to_o see_v these_o thing_n he_o suffer_v they_o and_o arise_v not_o to_o avenge_v they_o and_o which_o seem_v yet_o worse_o there_o want_v disciple_n with_o their_o cry_n to_o awake_v he_o all_o sleep_a what_o priest_n do_v you_o think_v be_v then_o choose_v by_o these_o monster_n what_o deacon_n cardinal_n see_v nothing_o be_v more_o natural_a then_o for_o like_a to_o beget_v their_o like_a this_o and_o much_o more_o baronius_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n 34._o gerber_n epist_n 40._o at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o age._n usher_n ib._n §._o 33._o platina_n in_o benedicto_n 4_o sabell_n in_o ennead_n 9_o l._n 1._o &_o l._n 2._o genebrard_n chronolg_n l_o 4_o in_o decimi_fw-la saeculi_fw-la initio_fw-la wernerus_n fasciculo_fw-la temporum_fw-la ae●●t_fw-la 6._o circa_fw-la annum_fw-la 944._o usher_n ibid._n §._o 34._o gerbertus_n in_o few_o word_n speak_v much_o of_o those_o time_n romanorum_fw-la mores_fw-la mundus_fw-la perhorrescit_fw-la the_o roman_n manner_n the_o world_n thorough_o abhor_v platina_n and_o sabellicus_n have_v the_o like_a complaint_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n so_o untollerable_o degenerate_a and_o genebrand_n say_v that_o in_o about_o 150_o year_n there_o be_v about_o fifty_o pope_n which_o whole_o swerve_v from_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o predecessor_n a_o virtute_fw-la maiorum_fw-la prorsus_fw-la deficerunt_fw-la apotactici_fw-la apostaticive_a potiùs_fw-la quam_fw-la apostolici_fw-la rather_o master_v of_o misrule_n or_o apostate_n than_o apostolic_a wernerus_n a_o carthusian_n monk_n say_v of_o this_o age_n sanctitatem_fw-la papam_fw-la dimisisse_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la jmporatores_fw-la accessisse_fw-la that_o holiness_n forsake_v the_o pope_n and_o come_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o profane_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n
king_n edgare_n make_v a_o wise_a religious_a speech_n to_o the_o english_a bishop_n which_o alred_n abbot_n of_o rhievall_n publish_v in_o writing_n ms._n abroad_o rhieval_n in_o genealogic_n davidis_fw-la regis_fw-la scotiae_fw-la ms._n i_o must_v say_v say_v he_o that_o which_o good_a man_n lament_v and_o wicked_a laugh_n at_o they_o melt_v away_o in_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n in_o chamber_v and_o wantonness_n that_o now_o the_o house_n of_o clerk_n be_v account_v the_o brothel_n of_o whore_n and_o synod_n of_o jester_n their_o dice_v their_o sing_v and_o dance_v their_o sit_v up_o till_o midnight_n with_o clamour_n and_o horror_n thus_o thus_o you_o waste_v the_o patrimony_n or_o king_n the_o alm_n of_o prince_n and_o which_o be_v more_o the_o price_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a blood_n do_v our_o father_n exhaust_v their_o treasure_n to_o this_o end_n fuerit_fw-la usher_n ibid._n §_o 33_o polydor._n lib_n 6._o hist_o angl._n a●l._n fric_n serm_n ad_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la ms._n colleg_n benedict_n cantabrig_n joan._n stella_n sacerdos_n in_o vita_fw-la b●nedicti_fw-la 4_o papae_fw-la 122._o inquit_fw-la acciderat_fw-la illi_fw-la aetati_fw-la quod_fw-la omnis_fw-la virtus_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o capite_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o membris_fw-la ex_fw-la hominum_fw-la iganvia_fw-la consumpta_fw-la fuerit_fw-la i_o have_v constantine_n you_o have_v peter_n sword_n in_o our_o hand_n let_v we_o join_v hand_n and_o sword_n that_o the_o leprous_a may_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o our_o tent_n and_o the_o lord_n sanctuary_n may_v be_v purge_v do_v it_o careful_o that_o we_o may_v not_o repent_v of_o what_o we_o have_v do_v and_o what_o we_o have_v give_v find_v that_o it_o be_v consume_v not_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o luxury_n of_o wicked_a man_n with_o unbridled_a liberty_n the_o covetous_a ravine_v and_o tyranny_n both_o of_o monk_n and_o priest_n most_o scandalous_a beyond_o all_o lay_v man_n at_o those_o time_n be_v describe_v and_o lament_v by_o polydore_n vergil_n aelfricus_fw-la joannes_n stella_n and_o other_o §._o 8._o etc._n usher_n ibid._n cap._n 3._o §._o 1._o etc._n etc._n after_o the_o great_a secular_a year_n of_o christ_n 1000_o after_o his_o incarnation_n the_o christian_a faith_n much_o decay_v from_o the_o ancient_a unity_n and_o inundation_n of_o all_o wickedness_n overflow_v the_o world_n by_o the_o description_n and_o lamentation_n of_o wernerus_n glaber_n rodulphus_fw-la lupus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la guilelmus_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la tyrensis_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o wonderful_a prodigy_n and_o terror_n appear_v from_o above_o and_o below_o be_v plague_n famine_n earthquake_n etc._n etc._n speak_v of_o by_o sigonius_n hector_n boethius_n hepidamus_n rupertus_n wernerus_n glaber_n sabellicus_n sigebert_n nangiacus_n vincentius_n bellevacensus_fw-la antonius_n florenticus_n archiepiscopus_fw-la joannes_n nanclerus_n as_o proclaymer_n of_o antichrist_n come_v for_o many_o believe_v that_o antichrist_n be_v then_o bear_v as_o baronius_n record_v 1001._o §_o 1._o &_o 4._o 5._o §._o 5._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o abbo_n floriacensis_fw-la of_o the_o time_n present_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n of_o christ_n which_o opinion_n have_v continue_v from_o the_o time_n of_o hippolytus_n cyrill_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o the_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n birth_n ojus_fw-la usher_n ib._n cap._n 4._o benno_n in_o vi●●_n hil●hbrandi_fw-la &_o platina_n in_o vita_fw-la ojus_fw-la silvester_n the_o second_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sit_v 4_o year_n he_o be_v before_o name_v gerbertus_n he_o enter_v by_o the_o devil_n aid_n say_v the_o cardinal_n benno_n and_o by_o the_o devil_n deceit_n be_v quick_o destroy_v and_o anno_fw-la 1033._o which_o be_v the_o thousand_o after_o christ_n death_n benedict_n the_o nine_o a_o child_n of_o ten_o or_o twelve_o year_n old_a be_v make_v pope_n by_o money_n not_o by_o merit_n and_o sit_v 12_o year_n he_o be_v also_o cunning_a in_o magic_n and_o devilish_a in_o art_n and_o wrought_v much_o mischief_n to_o the_o church_n and_o common_a wealth_n say_v benuo_n he_o be_v homo_fw-la ignavus_fw-la &_o nullius_fw-la pretij_fw-la say_v platina_n and_o stella_n probrosus_fw-la &_o infamius_fw-la say_v volateran_n nefarius_fw-la say_v baronius_n and_o he_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o wood_n say_v benno_n in_o his_o time_n cardinal_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o some_o estimation_n 9.16_o estimation_n baron_fw-fr anno_o 1061._o §._o 9.16_o and_o in_o nicolas_n the_o second_o time_n anno_fw-la 1059._o they_o have_v the_o first_o voice_n in_o choose_v pope_n now_o they_o do_v all_o they_o be_v create_v by_o these_o word_n 1610._o word_n august_n triumph_n de_fw-fr potestat_fw-la eccle_n quaest_a 8._o art_n 4._o ballar_n apolog._n cont●a_fw-la jacobum_fw-la regem_fw-la cap._n 4._o pag._n 34_o 35._o adedit_fw-la romae_fw-la 1610._o estote_fw-la fratres_fw-la nostri_fw-la &_o principes_fw-la mundi_fw-la the_o pope_n create_v they_o and_o they_o create_v the_o pope_n bellarmine_n say_v this_o dignity_n be_v not_o new_a since_o it_o have_v be_v 500_o year_n but_o sure_o that_o be_v new_a which_o come_v into_o the_o church_n after_o satan_n lose_v in_o which_o respect_n wiclife_o say_v cardinals_z be_v the_o invention_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o in_o stead_n of_o lot_n directe●_n by_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n act_v 1._o now_o whosoever_o the_o cardinal_n choose_v be_v he_o fit_a or_o unfit_a eccle._n wic●f_n art_n 40._o in_o council_n constan_n sess_v 8._o &_o in_o speculo_fw-la milit_fw-la eccle_n cap._n 10._o camera●_n cardinal_n lib._n de_fw-fr reform_v eccle._n he_o be_v straight_o beatissimus_fw-la pater_fw-la &_o immediatus_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarius_fw-la wicliffe_n be_v indeed_o condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n yet_o many_o in_o that_o council_n hold_v with_o his_o opinion_n say_v cameracensis_n that_o such_o choice_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o cardinal_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n and_o be_v use_v without_o reasonable_a cause_n burdensome_a to_o the_o church_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v abolish_v howsoever_o they_o be_v dignify_v with_o most_o glorious_a and_o transcendent_a title_n statu_fw-la clemang_fw-fr de_fw-fr corrupto_fw-la eccle._n statu_fw-la §_o 26._o who_o office_n be_v at_o first_o say_v clemangis_n to_o carry_v out_o the_o dead_a and_o bury_v they_o §._o 9_o when_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v expire_v after_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n still_o great_a miscry_n fall_v upon_o christendom_n romanus_n diogenes_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n be_v assail_v by_o war_n and_o take_v prisoner_n by_o the_o sultan_n of_o the_o persian_n and_o assyrian_n tread_v upon_o in_o despite_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o return_v home_o have_v his_o eye_n put_v out_o by_o his_o own_o noble_n and_o reject_v the_o sultan_n subdue_v many_o country_n great_a antiochia_n celosyra_n both_o the_o calicias_n isaurio_n pamphilia_n lycia_n pisidia_n lycaonia_n cappadocia_n galatia_n both_o the_o pontuse_n bythinia_n 1072._o matt._n paris_n hist_o anno_o dom._n 1072._o and_o part_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o west_n the_o negligence_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v so_o outrageous_a that_o some_o publish_a letter_n as_o send_v from_o hell_n by_o satan_n and_o all_o his_o infernal_a power_n give_v thanks_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n that_o they_o fail_v in_o nothing_o to_o do_v he_o pleasure_n but_o send_v or_o suffer_v so_o many_o soul_n to_o descend_v to_o hell_n as_o never_o any_o age_n have_v do_v before_o 1088_o anton._n in_o chro._n tit_n 16._o cap._n 1._o §_o 21._o segebert_n chron_n a_o 1088_o the_o shisme_n of_o anti-popes_n and_o anti-cesars_n increase_v this_o evil_a the_o crown_n and_o the_o crosier_n dissent_v one_o excommunicate_v another_o and_o one_o contemn_v another_o censure_n and_o tread_v down_o both_o authority_n and_o equity_n under_o their_o foot_n and_o then_o begin_v that_o novity_n not_o to_o call_v it_o heresy_n that_o to_o evil_a prince_n subjection_n be_v not_o due_a and_o though_o man_n have_v swear_v fidelity_n to_o they_o pontif_n onuphr_n vita_fw-la greg._n 7_o ex_fw-la libro_fw-la 4._o de_fw-la var●a_fw-la creation_n rom._n pontif_n yet_o they_o ought_v they_o not_o fidelity_n and_o that_o whosoever_o rise_v against_o the_o king_n be_v not_o perjure_a but_o he_o that_o obey_v the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v account_v excommunicate_a this_o say_v sigebert_n be_v a_o novity_n if_o not_o heresy_n but_o onuphrius_n say_v that_o hence_o do_v arise_v perniciosissima_fw-la seditio_fw-la &_o haeresis_fw-la omnium_fw-la pestilentissima_fw-la and_o auentinus_n say_v then_o false_a prophet_n false_a apostle_n 5._o aventin_n annal._n bo●er_n l._n 5._o false_a priest_n come_v out_o and_o deceive_v the_o people_n with_o counterfeit_a religion_n and_o seek_v to_o establish_v their_o own_o power_n and_o dominion_n quench_v christian_a charity_n and_o simplicity_n and_o then_o all_o good_a open_a just_a ingenuous_a and_o plain_a people_n think_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n begin_v for_o they_o see_v that_o be_v come_v to_o
midday_n in_o the_o open_a light_n come_v to_o deceive_v the_o residue_n that_o still_o be_v in_o christ_n persist_v in_o their_o simplicity_n for_o he_o have_v sup_v up_o the_o river_n of_o wise_a man_n and_o torrent_n of_o powerful_a man_n 40.23_o job_n 40.23_o and_o have_v hope_n that_o jordan_n will_v run_v in_o his_o mouth_n that_o be_v the_o humble_a and_o simple_a that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o he_o be_v antechrist_n which_o counterfet_v himself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o day_n 8._o 2_o thess_n 2.4_o 8._o but_o the_o midday_n and_o extol_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v slay_v with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o destroy_v in_o the_o appear_v of_o his_o come_n 6._o bern._n in_o psal_n 90._o vel_fw-la 91._o ser_n 6._o this_o conclusion_n also_o he_o repeat_v write_v upon_o the_o psalm_n qui_fw-fr habitat_fw-la superest_fw-la ut_fw-la reveletur_fw-la homo_fw-la peccati_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o remain_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n daemonium_fw-la non_fw-la modo_fw-la diurnum_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o meridianum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la transfiguratur_fw-la in_o angelum_fw-la lucis_fw-la sed_fw-la extollitur_fw-la super_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la dictur_n deus_fw-la aut_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n pauli_n bern._n serm_n 1._o in_o conver_n pauli_n and_o elsewhere_o saint_n bernard_n make_v his_o complaint_n to_o god_n o_o god_n thy_o near_a friend_n come_v near_o to_o stand_v against_o thou_o the_o whole_a university_n of_o christian_a people_n from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a seem_v to_o have_v conspire_v against_o thou_o from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n iniquity_n be_v go_v out_o from_o the_o elder_a judge_n thy_o vicar_n 89._o of_o bernard_n see_v more_o in_o d._n ●●eld_v appendix_n to_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o church_n part_n 1._o pag._n 88_o 89._o which_o seem_v to_o rule_v thy_o people_n and_o now_o we_o can_v say_v such_o people_n such_o priest_n for_o the_o people_n be_v not_o so_o as_o the_o priest_n alas_o alas_o o_o lord_n god_n those_o be_v the_o first_o &_o chief_a in_o persecution_n who_o seem_v to_o love_n and_o bear_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a place_n in_o thy_o church_n etc._n etc._n johannes_n sarisburiensis_n tell_v hadrian_n the_o four_o 24._o joh_n sarisbur_n in_o policratic_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 24._o plain_o what_o the_o world_n think_v of_o he_o and_o his_o prelate_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n show_v herself_o not_o a_o mother_n but_o a_o step_n mother_n to_o all_o other_o church_n for_o in_o it_o sit_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n lay_v importable_a burden_n upon_o man_n shoulder_n which_o themselves_o will_v not_o touch_v with_o one_o finger_n they_o hurt_v very_o oft_o and_o herein_o they_o follow_v the_o devil_n which_o then_o be_v think_v to_o do_v good_a when_o they_o cease_v to_o do_v harm_n except_o a_o very_a few_o who_o perform_v the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o pastor_n sed_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la romanus_n pontifex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la gravis_fw-la &_o fere_n intolerabilis_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v even_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o be_v grievous_a to_o all_o and_o almost_o intolerable_a 29._o aliacus_fw-la de_fw-la reformatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la caesarius_n heisterbach_n hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 29._o these_o time_n be_v evil_a the_o succeed_a much_o worse_o of_o which_o petrus_n de_fw-la aliaco_fw-it cardinal_n of_o cambray_n say_v it_o be_v a_o proverb_n in_o his_o time_n ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la statum_fw-la venit_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la digna_fw-la regi_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la reprobos_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v come_v to_o that_o state_n that_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v govern_v but_o only_o by_o reprobate_n robert_n grosthead_n 111._o matth._n paris_n in_o henric._n 3_o see_v this_o history_n abridge_v in_o d._n field_n church_n appendix_n part_n 1._o pag._n 97._o &_o b._n carlton_n jurisd_v cap._n 8._o §._o 111._o a_o very_a learned_a and_o holy_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n live_v anno_fw-la 1140._o write_v sharp_o to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o evil_n he_o do_v special_o in_o england_n that_o he_o be_v opposite_a to_o christ_n a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o a_o heretic_n in_o these_o his_o course_n etc._n etc._n upon_o receipt_n of_o which_o letter_n the_o pope_n be_v exceed_o move_v threaten_v to_o cast_v down_o this_o bishop_n into_o the_o pit_n of_o all_o confusion_n but_o be_v pacify_v by_o the_o more_o moderate_a cardinal_n tell_v he_o of_o this_o bishop_n holiness_n learning_n reputation_n and_o since_o there_o must_v be_v a_o departure_n from_o their_o church_n the_o meddle_v with_o such_o a_o excellent_a man_n may_v occasion_v it_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o prove_v be_v full_a and_o manifest_a 28._o archb._n abbo●_n contra_fw-la hill_n reason_n 1_o §._o 28._o william_n ockam_n a_o englishman_n a_o great_a schooleman_n live_v anno_fw-la 1320._o for_o his_o large_a reproof_n of_o the_o papacy_n in_o many_o point_n in_o his_o book_n he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o die_v willing_o under_o that_o sentence_n 11._o catalogue_n testium_fw-la verit_fw-la lib_n 18._o d._n field_n ch_n l._n 3._o c._n 11._o he_o cry_v out_o of_o pervert_v scripture_n father_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n with_o shameless_a and_o harlot_n forehead_n and_o that_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v pillar_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cast_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o heresy_n 11._o see_v b._n carlton_n jurisdiction_n cap._n 1._o §._o 11._o michael_n cesenas_n live_v anno_fw-la 1320._o he_o be_v general_a of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o minorite_n he_o write_v against_o three_o constitution_n of_o pope_n john_n 22._o and_o be_v by_o john_n deprive_v and_o disable_v from_o take_v any_o other_o dignity_n but_o cesena_n appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o from_o the_o head_n of_o faction_n in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o roman_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o be_v favour_v therein_o by_o ockam_n and_o many_o famous_a learned_a man_n and_o by_o the_o two_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o paris_n nicholas_n clemangis_n archidiaconus_fw-la baiocensis_fw-la live_v anno_fw-la 1417._o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corupto_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la statu_fw-la write_v very_o sharp_o against_o the_o pope_n ambition_n and_o covetousness_n prey_v upon_o all_o church_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o miserable_a slavery_n and_o against_o the_o stately_a cardinal_n and_o other_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n book_n gerson_n lib._n the_o council_n o_fw-la unius_fw-la obedientiae_fw-la and_o in_o many_o other_o book_n john_n gerson_n chancellor_n of_o paris_n anno_fw-la 1429._o write_v the_o like_a wish_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v reform_v and_o bring_v back_o to_o their_o ancient_a state_n in_o or_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n of_o gersons_n doctrine_n see_v d._n field_n appendix_n to_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o church_n part_n 2._o p._n 73._o &_o seq_fw-la petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n cardinalis_fw-la cameracensis_fw-la live_v about_o the_o same_o time_n write_v to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n a_o book_n wherein_o he_o reprove_v many_o notable_a abuse_n of_o the_o romanist_n and_o give_v advice_n how_o to_o redress_v they_o 13._o arch._n abbot_n ibid._n §._o 13._o laurentius_n valla_n a_o patricias_n of_o rome_n and_o canon_n of_o saint_n johns_n of_o lateran_n live_v about_o the_o same_o time_n write_v against_o the_o forge_a donation_n of_o constantine_n and_o many_o abuse_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n drive_v into_o exile_n i_o may_v here_o speak_v of_o leonardus_n aretinus_n antonius_n cornelius_n lynnichanus_n and_o diverse_a other_o writer_n reprove_v the_o same_o thing_n §._o 13._o antiquus_fw-la let_v they_o alone_o for_o these_o who_o you_o have_v allege_v speak_v not_o of_o any_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o against_o the_o wicked_a life_n of_o the_o professor_n antiquissimus_fw-la yes_o against_o both_o and_o especial_o because_o they_o labour_v by_o false_a doctrine_n to_o justify_v their_o do_n and_o therefore_o they_o write_v not_o only_o against_o the_o pope_n but_o against_o the_o papacy_n the_o very_a office_n that_o challenge_v a_o right_a to_o do_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n do_v the_o two_o cardinal_n cameracensis_n and_o cusanus_fw-la 2._o camer_n in_o his_o book_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n cusanus_fw-la concord_n cathol_n lib._n 2._o whole_o condemn_v the_o papacy_n as_o we_o do_v deny_v the_o pope_n universality_n of_o jurisdiction_n uncontrollable_a power_n infallible_a judgement_n and_o right_a to_o meddle_v with_o prince_n state_n make_v he_o nothing_o but_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o order_n and_o honour_n among_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o this_o claim_v power_n of_o the_o pope_n
use_v be_v worse_a than_o the_o use_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o bishop_n sin_v in_o buy_v their_o admission_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v or_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n determination_n that_o the_o beg_n of_o friar_n be_v idle_a and_o impious_a that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v material_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n against_o the_o unsoundnesse_n of_o the_o papacy_n yea_o madness_n contra_fw-la papatus_fw-la insaniam_fw-la at_o last_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o the_o slave_n of_o the_o popish_a bishop_n 1457._o bale_n cent_n 8._o cap._n 19_o ex_fw-la thomae_fw-la gascoigni_n dictionario_fw-la theologico_fw-la 34_o john_n capgrave_n doctor_n of_o diunity_n in_o oxford_n complain_v much_o of_o the_o impious_a tyranny_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o priest_n hireling_n expose_v their_o sheep_n to_o the_o wolf_n seek_v their_o wool_n and_o milk_n but_o not_o their_o soul_n etc._n etc._n 1460._o bale_n cent_n 8._o cap._n 1._o 35_o henry_n parker_n fellow_n of_o all-soule_n college_n in_o oxford_n preach_v at_o paul_n cross_n against_o the_o pride_n bravery_n and_o ambition_n of_o prelate_n so_o flat_a contrary_n to_o christ_n poverty_n and_o humility_n and_o at_o the_o people_n entreaty_n he_o write_v and_o publish_v his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o great_a shame_n of_o the_o prelate_n for_o which_o he_o endure_v long_a imprisonment_n and_o want_n 1470._o leland_n in_o catalogo_fw-la virorum_fw-la illustrium_fw-la bale_n cent_n 8_o cap._n 29._o these_o few_o for_o a_o taste_n i_o give_v you_o excerpt_v out_o of_o a_o great_a number_n which_o that_o one_o famous_a university_n of_o oxford_n afford_v whereof_o you_o may_v read_v more_o plentiful_o in_o master_n powel_n preface_n allege_v to_o search_v and_o allege_v the_o record_n of_o that_o other_o famous_a university_n of_o cambridge_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o england_n will_v not_o be_v fruitless_a but_o i_o hope_v to_o you_o needless_a antiquus_fw-la this_o be_v full_a enough_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n preacher_n doctor_n bishop_n and_o worthy_n of_o all_o sort_n out_o of_o one_o university_n with_o the_o danger_n of_o their_o state_n honour_n liberty_n and_o life_n set_v themselves_o public_o against_o the_o corruption_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o argue_v the_o corruption_n to_o be_v great_a public_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v reform_v and_o i_o be_o full_o satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v so_o but_o happy_o this_o reformation_n may_v have_v be_v perform_v without_o such_o a_o breach_n rent_n schism_n and_o scandal_n as_o you_o protestant_n have_v make_v by_o your_o depart_n from_o that_o ancient_a famous_a church_n of_o rome_n §._o 16._o antiquissimus_fw-la oh_o sir_n you_o must_v know_v that_o this_o reformation_n be_v seek_v for_o even_o at_o the_o pope_n hand_n with_o great_a humility_n and_o earnestness_n both_o by_o luther_n himself_o at_o the_o first_o and_o also_o by_o many_o other_o learned_a man_n time_n this_o appear_v by_o 〈◊〉_d commencary_n history_n of_o ●he_n council_n of_o ●r●●_n onuph●●●_n s●rius_n thua●●us_n and_o oath_n r_o history_n of_o those_o time_n state_n and_o prince_n yea_o by_o the_o emperor_n himself_o with_o much_o instance_n and_o pope_n a●rian_n the_o sixth_o be_v well_o incline_v thereunto_o confess_v ingenuous_o that_o the_o church_n be_v mighty_o overrun_v w●th_v corrup_n lion_z for_o reformation_n whereof_o diverse_a conference_n be_v appoint_v in_o germany_n as_o not_o only_o our_o sleidan_n but_o your_o surius_n and_o thun●nus_n report_n and_o pope_n clement_n the_o seven_o promise_v reformation_n to_o the_o emperor_n ch●rles_n the_o five_o and_o three_o cardinal_n caie●●●_n pole_n and_o contarene_n be_v depute_v to_o give_v advice_n for_o this_o reformation_n after_o many_o delay_n again_o ●rent_a anno_fw-la 1537._o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ●rent_a pope_n paul_n the_o three_o appoint_v four_o cardinal_n and_o five_o other_o prelate_n to_o consider_v the_o demand_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o to_o collect_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o devise_v remedy_n to_o correct_v they_o and_o of_o these_o abuse_n they_o gather_v great_a number_n which_o be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o the_o twelve_o book_n of_o sleidan_n commentary_n but_o all_o this_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o when_o upon_o due_a examination_n the_o cardinal_n find_v many_o thing_n too_o near_o touch_v the_o quick_a the_o reformation_n thereof_o will_v uncurable_o wound_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n overthrow_n and_o undo_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o wealth_n and_o worldly_a estate_n and_o when_o they_o consult_v deep_o thereof_o with_o the_o pope_n 1●7_n see_v d._n w●ite_a against_o ●●●er_n pag._n 100l_n 1●7_n there_o follow_v a_o conclusion_n and_o a_o plot_n quite_o contrary_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o principal_a thing_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v reform_v but_o all_o shall_v be_v justify_v since_o a_o thorough-reformation_n will_v spoil_v they_o and_o a_o halfe-reformation_n will_v not_o content_v the_o protestant_n and_o yet_o will_v give_v the_o world_n occasion_n to_o think_v they_o may_v err_v in_o many_o thing_n if_o they_o reform_v some_o now_o therefore_o the_o proceed_n must_v be_v change_v at_o first_o many_o of_o their_o divine_n oppose_v luther_n labour_v to_o prove_v all_o their_o doctrine_n ceremony_n and_o government_n by_o the_o scripture_n now_o they_o find_v it_o can_v be_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v cry_v down_o disgrace_v disable_v as_o ambiguous_a and_o insufficient_a to_o teach_v and_o guide_v the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n their_o own_o only_a church_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v exalt_v above_o the_o scripture_n that_o church_n must_v give_v authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n yea_o and_o sense_n also_o so_o that_o no_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v receive_v but_o that_o which_o that_o church_n allow_v for_o that_o church_n only_o can_v err_v 259_o see_v b._n and●ewe●_n a●_n ap●lo●●am_n resp●●●●_n pag._n 259_o and_o therefore_o they_o that_o admit_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n and_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n be_v bad_a divine_n little_o better_o than_o heretic_n &_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n from_o hence_o come_v those_o base_a speech_n from_o their_o doctor_n eckius_fw-la s●●g●●●us_o hosius_n contra_fw-la 〈◊〉_d lib._n 3._o p●g_n 148._o 〈◊〉_d s●●g●●●us_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v no_o authority_n but_o from_o the_o church_n hosius_n no_o more_o force_n than_o aesop_n fable_n without_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n pighius_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v of_o itself_o but_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o may_v be_v writhen_a every_o way_n costerus_n compare_v it_o to_o a_o sheath_n 92._o costeranchir_n d●_n sa●●a_o script_n cap._n 1._o §._o huius_fw-la script_n pa_n 44._o b_o llar_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la d●i_fw-la l●b_fw-la 4._o c●p_n 9_o in_o ●alce_a council_n trid._n sess_v 4._o pighius_fw-la controv_n 3._o pag_n 92_o &_o hi●●arch_n epist_n nunc_fw-la mulhus_n disp_n 2._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la pa._n 21._o see_v d._n white_a against_o vish●r_n pag_n 92._o admit_v any_o dagger_n wooden_a or_o leaden_a the_o jesuite_n salmeron_n say_v tradition_n be_v the_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v try_v and_o bellarmine_n say_v the_o best_a way_n to_o try_v which_o be_v true_a tradition_n which_o be_v false_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o now_o to_o speak_v in_o their_o dialect_n or_o meaning_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o queen_n and_o the_o scripture_n her_o slave_n that_o church_n have_v now_o two_o servant_n of_o equal_a authority_n scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o that_o church_n council_n of_o trent_n say_v scripturas_fw-la &_o traditiones_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la aspect_n ac_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la suscipit_fw-la &_o veneratur_fw-la we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n with_o equal_a affection_n and_o reverence_n nay_o no_o great_a matter_n what_o the_o scripture_n say_v for_o their_o tradition_n must_v interpret_v it_o if_o the_o scripture_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o matth._n 26_o 27_o their_o tradition_n say_v not_o all_o but_o the_o clergy_n only_o and_o not_o all_o the_o clergy_n but_o he_o that_o minister_v it_o only_o so_o what_o their_o priest_n teach_v must_v be_v rece●ued_v and_o obey_v whether_o out_o of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n ●53_n tolet._n casuum_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la l_o b_o 4._o cap._n 3._o p_o ●53_n cardinal_n tolet_n say_v the_o people_n may_v merit_v be_v god_n hand_n in_o believe_v a_o heresy_n if_o their_o teacher_n propound_v it_o for_o their_o obedience_n be_v meritorious_a and_o stapleton_n they_o must_v not_o regard_v quid_fw-la but_o quis_fw-la not_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n but_o who_o
and_o redeem_v us._n you_o believe_v so_o also_o but_o you_o add_v christ_n have_v satisfy_v only_o for_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o for_o sin_n before_o baptism_n but_o that_o we_o must_v satisfy_v for_o our_o follow_a sin_n 10._o august_n serm_n 13._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la dom_n christus_fw-la suscipiendo_fw-la poenam_fw-la &_o non_fw-la suscipiendo_fw-la culpam_fw-la &_o culpam_fw-la delevit_fw-la &_o poenam_fw-la see_v b_o morton_n appeal_n lib._n 1._o cap_n 2_o sect_n 23._o §_o 47._o &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 15._o sect_n 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o also_o for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n due_a to_o all_o our_o sin_n either_o upon_o earth_n or_o in_o purgatory_n this_o we_o account_v a_o error_n against_o the_o foundation_n make_v christ_n but_o half_a a_o saviour_n and_o against_o reason_n for_o he_o that_o forgive_v the_o fault_n forgive_v the_o punishment_n also_o in_o s._n augustine_n opinion_n 24_o we_o believe_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n militant_a church_n upon_o earth_n you_o believe_v so_o too_o but_o you_o add_v we_o ought_v also_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o soul_n suffer_v in_o purgatory_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n long_a time_n unknown_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n §._o 2._o these_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o church_n &_o by_o your_o approbation_n of_o they_o you_o grant_v they_o all_o to_o be_v true_a good_a ancient_a and_o catholic_a which_o may_v appear_v also_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v 95._o see_v history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n lib._n 1._o pag._n 95._o at_o a_o diet_n in_o r●tisbon_n anno_fw-la 1541._o where_o be_v present_a jasper_n cardinal_n contareni_n the_o pope_n nuncio_n granuel_n deliver_v a_o book_n of_o 22_o article_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o by_o the_o divine_n of_o both_o side_n whereof_o the_o chief_a be_v choose_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o dispute_v namely_o eckius_fw-la flugius_fw-la and_o gropperus_n romist_n melancthon_n bucer_n and_o p●storia_n protestant_n and_o upon_o their_o debate_n some_o thing_n be_v approve_v and_o some_o amend_v by_o common_a consent_n they_o dissent_v only_o in_o five_o thing_n and_o in_o seventeen_o they_o all_o final_o agree_v 54.55_o ibib._n pag._n 54.55_o also_o when_o the_o augustane_n confession_n of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o divine_n be_v read_v at_o augspurge_n anno_o 1530_o the_o pope_n legate_n cardinal_n campeggio_n say_v plain_o to_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o difference_n of_o that_o doctrine_n from_o the_o roman_a for_o the_o most_o part_n seem_v verbal_a and_o that_o it_o import_v not_o much_o whether_o one_o speak_v after_o one_o manner_n or_o after_o another_o and_o that_o for_o the_o present_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o make_v any_o strict_a examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n only_a mean_n shall_v be_v use_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v go_v no_o further_o on_o 159._o see_v annal_n elizah_n engl_v pag_n 63._o and_o relation_n of_o religionin_n the_o west_n part_n pag._n x._o 2._o 159._o and_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o anno_o 1560._o offer_v to_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o allow_v our_o whole_a book_n of_o common_a prayer_n if_o she_o will_v receive_v it_o as_o from_o he_o and_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o so_o he_o may_v well_o do_v for_o the_o book_n be_v with_o great_a judgement_n purposely_o so_o frame_v out_o of_o the_o ground_n of_o religion_n wherein_o both_o side_n agree_v that_o their_o very_a catholic_n may_v resort_v unto_o it_o without_o scruple_n or_o scandal_n if_o faction_n more_o than_o reason_n do_v not_o sway_v the_o truth_n be_v be_v it_o not_o for_o other_o cause_n the_o controversy_n of_o point_n of_o religion_n may_v well_o be_v compound_v betwixt_o us._n for_o the_o learned_a of_o they_o know_v that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o true_a christi_fw-la ans_fw-fr both_o for_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n to_o make_v we_o live_v holy_o righteous_o and_o sober_o by_o god_n grace_n to_o become_v good_a subject_n to_o our_o prince_n good_a neighbour_n among_o man_n good_a diligent_a and_o dutiful_a member_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n painful_a peaceable_a and_o bless_a people_n and_o blessing_n to_o the_o country_n where_o we_o live_v and_o to_o conduct_v we_o through_o all_o necessary_a gracious_a way_n and_o mean_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o eternal_a blessedness_n there_o be_v no_o defect_n in_o our_o doctrine_n to_o these_o end_n to_o promote_v christ_n kingdom_n both_o of_o grace_n and_o glory_n §._o 3._o only_o they_o know_v and_o we_o confess_v our_o doctrine_n be_v insufficient_a to_o set_v up_o a_o earthly_a church-kingdome_n instead_o of_o christ_n heavenly_a kingdom_n such_o as_o the_o pope_n desire_v over-top_v all_o other_o christian_a prince_n and_o potentate_n and_o maintain_v with_o all_o worldly_a wealth_n pomp_n and_o glory_n be_v it_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o desire_v describe_v and_o receive_v in_o the_o best_a primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n our_o religion_n will_v abundant_o satisfy_v he_o but_o this_o high_a transcendent_a supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n far_o beyond_o those_o primitive_a time_n and_o the_o wealth_n of_o the_o world_n to_o maintain_v he_o and_o he_o in_o their_o greatness_n 25._o act_n 19.28_o 25._o be_v the_o great_a diana_n of_o the_o roman_n which_o they_o strive_v for_o and_o these_o doctrinal_a controversy_n be_v but_o subordinate_a mean_n subtle_o keep_v on_o foot_n to_o make_v the_o adversary_n of_o his_o supremacy_n more_o odious_a for_o by_o that_o craft_n their_o wealth_n be_v maintain_v seq_fw-la d._n francis_n white_a orthodox_n faith_n epist_n dedic_fw-la ramold_n &_o hart_n confer_v cap._n 7._o dinis_fw-la 6_o &_o 7._o pag._n 367_o &_o seq_fw-la our_o doctor_n reinolds_n observe_v well_o and_o prove_v large_o that_o this_o in_o these_o latter_a age_n have_v be_v the_o pope_n main_a aim_n and_o practice_v and_o man_n of_o skill_n and_o judgement_n who_o know_v the_o pope_n thorough_o and_o faithful_o set_v forth_o their_o life_n have_v open_v this_o secret_a and_o mystery_n of_o state_n as_o it_o have_v be_v manage_v since_o it_o grow_v to_o majesty_n that_o they_o mind_n the_o prop_v up_o of_o their_o own_o kingdom_n while_o they_o pretend_v the_o worship_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o in_o the_o pope_n language_n the_o church_n do_v signify_v not_o the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n but_o the_o papacy_n that_o be_v the_o dominion_n and_o princehood_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o thing_n both_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a 246._o k._n james_n his_o remonstrance_n to_o peron_n pag._n 246._o and_o our_o late_a learned_a and_o judicious_a king_n james_n say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n serve_v in_o this_o our_o corrupt_a age_n as_o a_o cloak_n to_o cover_v a_o thousand_o new_a invention_n and_o no_o long_o signify_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o faithful_a or_o such_o as_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o his_o word_n but_o a_o certain_a glorious_a ostentation_n and_o temporal_a monarchy_n whereof_o the_o pope_n forsooth_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n 259._o ibid._n pag._n 259._o and_o s._n peter_n net_n be_v now_o change_v into_o a_o cast_a net_n or_o a_o fly_v to_o fish_v for_o all_o the_o wealth_n of_o most_o flourish_a kingdom_n 1_o to_o this_o end_n consider_v whether_o there_o be_v more_o care_n and_o policy_n to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n greatness_n and_o revenue_n then_o to_o make_v good_a christian_n for_o where_o good_a christian_n be_v already_o such_o as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v thither_o the_o pope_n emissary_n come_v to_o make_v they_o the_o pope_n subject_n and_o stick_v not_o at_o treason_n rebellion_n invasion_n if_o they_o have_v hope_n so_o to_o effect_v it_o 159._o relation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o west_n pag._n 156_o 159._o 2_o consider_v whether_o all_o other_o though_o never_o so_o profane_a or_o wicked_a jew_n stew_n turk_n infidel_n heretic_n or_o atheist_n open_a enemy_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o suffer_v more_o quiet_o to_o live_v in_o italy_n rome_n and_o under_o the_o pope_n nose_n than_o protestant_n who_o only_a great_a crime_n be_v they_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n and_o corruption_n 464._o molius_fw-la defence_n pag._n 464._o 3_o consider_v if_o all_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o more_o slight_o punish_v than_o offence_n against_o the_o pope_n greatness_n in_o case_n of_o murder_n treason_n incest_n blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n ordinary_a bishop_n may_v bind_v and_o loose_v but_o the_o case_n of_o hinder_v man_n from_o go_v to_o rome_n for_o pardon_n of_o intrusion_n into_o any_o benefice_n or_o office_n ecclesiasticail_v of_o purloin_v any_o church_n good_n or_o offend_v the_o sea-apostolicke_a etc._n etc._n those_o be_v reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o the_o penitentiary_n tax_v for_o falsify_v the_o letter_n apostolical_a be_v
more_o than_o three_o time_n so_o much_o as_o the_o tax_n for_o incest_n with_o a_o man_n mother_n 4_o consider_v fine_a bellar._n the_o justif_a lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o in_o fine_a if_o they_o wink_v not_o at_o our_o doctrine_n in_o their_o own_o man_n as_o pighius_fw-la the_o divine_n of_o colen_n durandus_fw-la and_o hundred_o of_o other_o as_o long_o as_o they_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o such_o catholic_n our_o opinion_n be_v not_o heresy_n but_o in_o we_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v persecute_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n 5_o consider_v 293._o histor_n council_n trent_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 293._o how_o kind_o they_o offer_v to_o tolerate_v thing_n otherwise_o very_o odious_a unto_o they_o if_o man_n will_v profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o anno_o 1548._o paul_n the_o three_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o verona_n and_o ferentino_n his_o nuncij_fw-la into_o germany_n than_o almost_o lose_v from_o he_o with_o faculty_n to_o grant_v unto_o all_o person_n king_n prince_n ecclesiastical_a and_o regular_a that_o will_v return_v to_o his_o obedience_n absolution_n from_o all_o censure_n dispensation_n for_o irregularity_n or_o objuration_n penance_n oath_n perjury_n and_o to_o restore_v they_o to_o honour_n fame_n and_o dignity_n and_o to_o license_v they_o to_o partake_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o communion_n to_o eat_v flesh_n in_o lent_n and_o fast_v day_n with_o many_o other_o immunity_n so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v do_v in_o time_n and_o place_n without_o scandal_n etc._n etc._n so_o pius_n the_o four_o 49._o annal_n eliz._n engl._n pag._n 63._o latin_n pag._n 49._o anno_fw-la 1560._o offer_v to_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o allow_v our_o whole_a book_n of_o common_a prayer_n if_o she_o will_v receive_v it_o as_o from_o he_o and_o by_o his_o authority_n 6_o consider_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o the_o main_a cause_n of_o the_o pope_n quarrel_n and_o thunder_n against_o the_o german_a emperor_n and_o our_o english_a king_n john_n and_z henry_n the_o 8._o who_o hold_v all_o the_o doctrinal_a point_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o only_o impair_v the_o pope_n highness_n greatness_n or_o revenue_n in_o henry_n 8_o time_n 70._o hist_o conc_fw-fr trid._n lib._n 1._o pag._n 70._o the_o court_n of_o rome_n maintain_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v there_o be_v no_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n the_o first_o and_o principal_a article_n be_v change_v which_o be_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o sedition_n will_v arise_v as_o well_o for_o this_o only_a as_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o event_n show_v to_o be_v true_a for_o though_o the_o king_n continue_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o full_o by_o command_n and_o punishment_n that_o pope_n paul_n 3_o commend_v he_o high_o to_o the_o emperor_n 87._o ibid_fw-la pag._n 89_o 90._o ibid._n pag._n 87._o as_o a_o illustrious_a example_n to_o be_v imitate_v in_o that_o course_n yet_o for_o abrogate_a the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o revenue_n in_o england_n he_o thunder_v a_o bull_n against_o he_o denounce_v he_o deprive_v of_o his_o k●ngdome_n and_o his_o adherent_n of_o whatsoever_o they_o possess_v and_o command_v his_o subject_n to_o deny_v he_o obedience_n and_o stranger_n to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o that_o kingdom_n and_o all_o to_o take_v arm_n against_o and_o to_o persecute_v both_o himself_o and_o his_o follower_n grant_v they_o their_o estate_n and_o good_n for_o their_o prey_n and_o their_o person_n for_o their_o slave_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o point_n of_o true_a ancient_a catholic_a christian_n doctrine_n that_o you_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o to_o make_v good_a gracious_a christian_n inheritor_n of_o heavenly_a felicity_n but_o it_o be_v your_o wealth_n and_o greatness_n or_o the_o set_n up_o and_o maintain_v of_o your_o visible_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o doctor_n sanders_n call_v it_o whereof_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n speak_v never_o a_o word_n and_o whereof_o the_o primitive_a church_n never_o dream_v this_o if_o our_o religion_n will_v allow_v 745._o pius_fw-la 4._o hist_o conc_fw-fr trid._n lib._n 8._o pag._n 745._o you_o will_v allow_v of_o our_o religion_n the_o rather-politicke-then-pious_a pope_n say_v once_o since_o he_o can_v not_o regain_v the_o protestant_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o keep_v those_o in_o obedience_n which_o he_o have_v 1609._o bellar._n de_fw-fr eccle_n militant_a lib._n 3._o c._n 2._o §._o nostra_fw-la autem_fw-la sententia_fw-la see_v triplici_fw-la nodo_fw-la pag._n 41_o 42._o print_a 1609._o to_o make_v the_o division_n strong_a and_o the_o party_n irreconciliable_a conformable_a whereunto_o now_o their_o doctrine_n be_v that_o such_o as_o submit_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n do_v renounce_v christianity_n for_o the_o church_n say_v bellarmine_n be_v the_o company_n of_o they_o that_o live_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o he_o though_o they_o have_v no_o inward_a virtue_n but_o be_v indeed_o atheist_n hypocrite_n or_o heretic_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o blackwell_n the_o archpriest_n in_o england_n anno_fw-la 1607._o he_o call_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n one_o of_o the_o principal_a head_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o say_v they_o that_o disturb_v or_o diminish_v that_o primacy_n seek_v to_o cut_v off_o the_o very_a head_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o dissolve_v the_o state_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o of_o all_o the_o member_n §._o 4._o this_o primacy_n be_v practise_v in_o the_o pope_n challenge_v government_n over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o 1._o for_o turrecremata_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 27._o aug._n triumph_n q._n 19_o art_n 1._o as_o matrimony_n be_v contract_v betwixt_o a_o prelate_n and_o his_o particular_a church_n by_o his_o election_n and_o consecration_n so_o betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o universal_a church_n thus_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o general_a bridegroom_n sponsus_fw-la and_o rome_n the_o general_a bride_n sponsa_fw-la than_o they_o two_o be_v the_o common_a parent_n of_o all_o christian_n so_o that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o christian_n that_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o father_n and_o that_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n ●_o capist_n fol._n 31._o ●_o so_o say_v capistranus_n fol._n 56_o a._n a_o manifest_a error_n for_o 1_o none_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n corinth_n galatia_n ephesus_n philippi_n colossus_n thessaly_n smirna_n pergamus_n thyatira_n sardis_n philadelphia_n laodicea_n etc._n etc._n nor_o 2_o other_o primitive_a church_n follow_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n be_v any_o way_n dependent_a upon_o rome_n or_o her_o bishop_n but_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n in_o general_a jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n 2.20_o eph._n 2.20_o be_v no_o more_o stranger_n and_o foreigner_n but_o fellow-citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n ephes_n 2.19_o 20._o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v rome_n their_o mother_n but_o their_o sister_n not_o the_o root_n but_o a_o particular_a branch_n of_o the_o church_n such_o a_o one_o as_o equal_o with_o the_o rest_n do_v partake_v of_o the_o root_n and_o fatness_n of_o the_o olive_n tree_n rom._n 11.17_o 22._o rom._n 11.18_o 20_o 21_o 22._o and_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v write_v direct_o this_o prophetical_a caveat_n boast_v not_o against_o the_o branch_n but_o if_o thou_o boast_v thou_o bear_v not_o the_o root_n but_o the_o root_n thou_o be_v not_o high_o mind_v but_o fear_n for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n lest_o he_o also_o spare_v not_o thou_o if_o thou_o continue_v not_o in_o his_o goodness_n thou_o shall_v also_o be_v cut_v off_o this_o show_v 1_o that_o rome_n be_v but_o a_o branch_n not_o the_o root_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 2_o that_o it_o may_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o yet_o other_o church_n stand_v and_o flourish_v be_v unite_v to_o the_o common_a root_n and_o therefore_o be_v independent_a upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 13._o baronius_n a_o 45._o n._n 18._o bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont_n lib._n 2._o c._n 2._o &_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 13._o and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o mystical_a babylon_n '_o mother_n of_o abomination_n drunken_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n revel_v 17.5_o 6_o be_v the_o very_a city_n of_o rome_n build_v upon_o seven_o mountain_n verse_n 9_o and_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n solent_fw-la ribera_n in_o apoc._n 14._o n._n 27._o &_o seq_fw-la viegas_n in_o apoc._n 27._o comment_n 1._o sec_fw-la 3._o suarez_n lib._n 5._o c._n 7._o n._n 11._o of_o this_o point_n see_v the_o glorious_a panegyric_n oration_n of_o innotencius_n 3_o call_v himself_o the_o spouse_n of_o the_o
many_o nay_o but_o the_o issue_n of_o these_o lady_n be_v very_o unfortunate_a and_o many_o calamity_n proceed_v from_o these_o marriage_n as_o he_o there_o report_v yet_o the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o all_o this_o partly_o to_o bind_v the_o french_a unto_o he_o and_o partly_o to_o bridle_v the_o emperor_n who_o he_o will_v not_o have_v grow_v too_o great_a by_o addition_n of_o britain_n to_o his_o state_n beside_o he_o need_v not_o much_o care_n for_o this_o present_a emperor_n maximilian_n a_o poor_a prince_n full_a of_o affair_n and_o of_o small_a credit_n yea_o maximilian_n himself_o afterward_o affect_v the_o popedom_n as_o guicciardine_n report_v but_o come_v we_o to_o the_o affair_n of_o our_o own_o nation_n pope_n julius_n the_o 2._o give_v a_o dispensation_n that_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o of_o england_n may_v marry_v katherine_n the_o wife_n of_o his_o brother_n arthur_n decease_v a_o marriage_n plain_o condemn_v by_o the_o scripture_n leu._n 18.16_o and_o 20.21_o and_o mat._n 24.2_o 4._o and_o by_o many_o learned_a university_n afterward_o pope_n clement_n the_o 7._o 68_o hist_o council_n trid._n lib._n 1._o pag._n 68_o at_o henry_n suit_n send_v cardinal_n campeggio_n into_o england_n frame_v a_o brief_a to_o dissolve_v the_o king_n say_v marriage_n with_o katherine_n to_o be_v publish_v when_o some_o few_o proof_n be_v pass_v which_o he_o be_v sure_a will_v easy_o be_v make_v and_o to_o give_v liberty_n to_o the_o king_n to_o marry_v another_o this_o anno_fw-la 1524._o but_o anno_fw-la 1529._o the_o pope_n think_v it_o better_a to_o join_v with_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v son_n to_o katherine_n sister_n send_v another_o nuncio_n to_o campeggio_n with_o order_n to_o burn_v the_o brief_a and_o to_o proceed_v slow_o in_o the_o cause_n for_o the_o popement_n to_o apply_v himself_o to_o his_o best_a advantage_n but_o the_o king_n espy_v their_o juggle_n final_o banish_v the_o pope_n authority_n out_o of_o england_n xij_o annal_n ibid._n praepar_fw-la pag._n a._n 3._o latin_a apparat._n p._n xij_o but_o queen_n mary_n the_o daughter_n of_o h●nry_n by_o the_o say_a marriage_n of_o katherine_n persuade_v herself_o that_o all_o the_o right_a that_o she_o have_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v uphold_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o dispensation_n make_v that_o marriage_n lawful_a and_o give_v sentence_n of_o her_o side_n after_o her_o father_n have_v declare_v her_o illegitimate_a and_o therefore_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o cleave_v strong_o to_o the_o pope_n also_o charles_n the_o 5_o emperor_n procure_v a_o marriage_n betwixt_o philip_n his_o son_n of_o spain_n and_o mary_n queen_n of_o england_n by_o a_o dispensation_n of_o pope_n julius_n the_o 3._o because_o they_o be_v ally_v in_o the_o three_o degree_n and_o that_o charles_n himself_o have_v contract_v to_o marry_v she_o be_v then_o under_o age_n for_o time_n to_o come_v 4._o ibid._n pag._n 5._o sed_fw-la ●atin_n pag._n 4._o after_o her_o death_n king_n philip_n desirous_a to_o keep_v england_n treat_v serious_o of_o a_o marriage_n with_o queen_n elizabeth_n his_o late_a wife_n sister_n with_o promise_n to_o obtain_v a_o special_a dispensation_n from_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o king_n of_o france_n fear_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v by_o the_o pope_n labour_v secret_o to_o hinder_v but_o the_o hindrance_n of_o the_o marriage_n be_v from_o queen_n elizabeth_n herself_o seq_fw-la relation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o west_n pag._n 34._o &_o 27._o see_v the_o whole_a tract_n pag._n 25._o &_o seq_fw-la by_o such_o dispensation_n from_o the_o pope_n marriage_n in_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n have_v be_v so_o near_o that_o they_o remain_v still_o as_o brethren_n all_o of_o one_o family_n and_o as_o arm_n of_o the_o selfsame_o body_n keep_v their_o dominion_n unite_v still_o together_o without_o distraction_n philip_n the_o second_o of_o spain_n may_v call_v the_o archduke_n albert_n both_o brother_n cousin_n nephew_n and_o son_n be_v uncle_n to_o himself_o cousin-german_a to_o his_o father_n husband_n to_o his_o sister_n and_o father_n to_o his_o wife_n such_o marriage_n make_v lawful_a only_o by_o the_o pope_n dispense_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o bind_v both_o the_o party_n and_o issue_n thereof_o to_o be_v firm_a to_o the_o papacy_n and_o to_o maintain_v that_o authority_n by_o which_o themselves_o stand_v maintain_v and_o honour_v so_o search_v and_o penetrant_fw-la be_v that_o sea_n of_o rome_n to_o strengthen_v itself_o more_o by_o unlawful_a marriage_n of_o other_o man_n than_o ever_o prince_n yet_o can_v do_v by_o the_o most_o lawful_a marriage_n of_o his_o own_o and_o thus_o the_o pope_n by_o some_o one_o act_n tie_n unto_o himself_o the_o favour_n of_o many_o friend_n and_o many_o generation_n yet_o may_v this_o be_v think_v fit_a only_o for_o blind_a or_o ill-minded_n prince_n the_o well-sighted_n or_o well-minded_a need_v no_o such_o cloak_n nor_o will_v make_v use_n of_o any_o such_o for_o any_o otherwise_o uniustifiable_a course_n but_o if_o they_o through_o their_o own_o ignorance_n or_o their_o ancestor_n unjust_a project_n have_v be_v involue_v in_o such_o net_n as_o their_o conscience_n now_o mislike_v they_o may_v after_o our_o king_n henry_n example_n by_o god_n book_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o godly_a wise_a and_o learned_a man_n alter_v their_o course_n abolish_v his_o authority_n that_o alter_v god_n law_n or_o delude_v they_o and_o establish_v their_o state_n by_o more_o sound_a mean_n humanum_fw-la est_fw-la errare_fw-la perseverare_fw-la diabolicum_fw-la §._o 9_o vi_o other_o dispensation_n 57_o see_v verdunt_fw-la discourse_n anno_fw-la 1563._o mensae_fw-la febr._n in_o hist_o conc_fw-fr trid._n lib._n 7._o pag._n 676._o see_v tortura_fw-la torti_n pag_n 57_o for_o diverse_a thing_n hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n state_n and_o people_n but_o very_o profitable_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v ordinary_a about_o which_o one_o johannes_n verdun_n speak_v free_o and_o judicious_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n dispensation_n say_v he_o be_v account_v dis-obligation_n from_o the_o law_n but_o god_n law_n be_v perpetual_a and_o remain_v inviolable_a for_o ever_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n and_o the_o church_n his_o servant_n to_o bestow_v favour_n as_o a_o master_n upon_o his_o servant_n he_o be_v but_o a_o servant_n at_o the_o best_a to_o he_o who_o be_v spouse_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v he_o by_o dispense_n unbind_v any_o that_o be_v bind_v but_o only_o declare_v to_o he_o that_o be_v not_o bind_v that_o he_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o law_n indeed_o humane_a law_n through_o the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o lawmaker_n and_o case_n not_o foresee_v may_v admit_v dispensation_n in_o sundry_a occurrence_n as_o exception_n from_o the_o general_a law_n where_o it_o may_v be_v just_o think_v the_o lawmaker_n will_v have_v make_v exception_n if_o they_o have_v foresee_v those_o case_n but_o where_o god_n be_v the_o lawgiver_n from_o who_o nothing_o be_v conceal_v and_o by_o who_o no_o accident_n be_v not_o foresee_v the_o law_n can_v have_v no_o exception_n but_o all_o his_o law_n be_v equity_n itself_o perpetual_a and_o immutable_a 321._o hist_o conc_fw-fr trid._n lib._n 4._o pag._n 321._o the_o king_n of_o france_n anno_o 1551._o in_o a_o print_a manifest_a publish_v to_o his_o subject_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o regard_v the_o pope_n dispensation_n which_o be_v not_o able_a to_o secure_v the_o conscience_n and_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o shadow_n cast_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n which_o can_v hide_v the_o truth_n from_o god_n even_o in_o man_n law_n dispensationes_fw-la sunt_fw-la legum_fw-la ulnera_fw-la dispensation_n be_v deep_a wound_n in_o god_n law_n deadly_a wound_n both_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o dispenser_n for_o law_n often_o wound_v have_v little_a life_n leave_v in_o they_o and_o he_o that_o wound_v they_o have_v little_a feel_n of_o conscience_n christ_n come_v not_o to_o dissolve_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v it_o matth._n 5.17_o the_o pope_n come_v not_o to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n but_o to_o dissolve_v they_o he_o unbind_v subject_n oath_n to_o prince_n yea_o bind_v subject_n with_o oath_n against_o prince_n both_o against_o god_n law_n bind_v where_o he_o shall_v loose_v lose_v where_o he_o shall_v bind_v as_o anti-god_n and_o antichrist_n he_o bind_v his_o catholic_n for_o a_o time_n while_o they_o want_v strength_n they_o shall_v not_o stir_v get_v strength_n than_o they_o be_v loose_v then_o stir_v kill●_n and_o massacre_n thus_o gregory_n the_o 13._o interpret_v the_o bull_n of_o pius_n the_o 5._o and_o thus_o prince_n of_o the_o old_a christian_a faith_n that_o they_o live_v and_o reign_v be_v behold_v to_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o new_a stamp_n not_o for_o their_o faith_n but_o for_o their_o weakness_n 815._o hist_o conc_fw-fr trent_n lib._n
8._o pag._n 815._o and_o with_o other_o law_n constitution_n counsel_n and_o ordinance_n he_o play_v fast_o and_o loose_a as_o he_o listen_v take_v for_o example_n that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n when_o much_o debate_v have_v be_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o cardinal_n whether_o his_o holiness_n shall_v confirm_v the_o council_n or_o no_o because_o through_o the_o importunity_n of_o prince_n and_o some_o learned_a divine_n many_o decree_n have_v pass_v for_o reformat_fw-la on_o of_o diverse_a thing_n whereby_o the_o dignity_n and_o profit_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v much_o impair_v at_o last_o cardinal_n amulius_n tell_v the_o pope_n since_o he_o can_v not_o possible_o avoid_v the_o call_n and_o celebrate_v of_o the_o council_n so_o much_o desire_v by_o the_o clamour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o must_v now_o either_o quick_o confirm_v it_o to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n or_o else_o prince_n and_o state_n will_v use_v other_o mean_n by_o national_a counsel_n or_o by_o another_o general_a council_n to_o satisfy_v themselves_o but_o now_o by_o confirm_v all_o and_o give_v as_o much_o quick_a execution_n as_o be_v possible_a the_o pope_n may_v stay_v and_o quiet_v the_o humour_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o present_a and_o afterward_o by_o unsensible_a and_o unresistable_a degree_n by_o his_o dispensation_n he_o may_v bring_v all_o to_o the_o same_o estate_n wherein_o it_o be_v before_o without_o seem_v to_o violate_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n and_o this_o policy_n take_v effect_n and_o so_o both_o frustrate_v the_o good_a reformation_n intend_v by_o the_o decree_n and_o also_o gull_v the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o prince_n and_o prelate_n pain_n and_o turn_v all_o to_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o court_n and_o cardinal_n whereby_o it_o plain_o appear_v the_o pope_n faction_n aim_v not_o at_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n or_o christian_a commonwealth_n but_o only_o at_o their_o own_o wealth_n and_o greatness_n and_o hereby_o appear_v also_o the_o great_a power_n and_o iniquity_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n antiquus_fw-la whatsoever_o they_o aim_v at_o i_o be_o resolve_v that_o many_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v of_o god_n they_o be_v certain_o the_o fault_n of_o man_n and_o abuse_v practise_v under_o colour_n of_o religion_n i_o can_v i_o will_v not_o defend_v they_o but_o i_o do_v much_o wonder_n how_o not_o be_v of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v so_o general_o receive_v believe_v to_o be_v of_o god_n and_o so_o long_o continue_v and_o not_o rather_o long_o since_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n by_o prince_n and_o people_n antiquissimus_fw-la sir_n if_o you_o know_v and_o consider_v the_o policy_n and_o power_n which_o have_v be_v use_v to_o bring_v they_o in_o and_o maintain_v they_o your_o wonder_n will_v cease_v antiquus_fw-la i_o pray_v you_o make_v i_o acquaint_v with_o they_o antiquissimus_fw-la some_o of_o the_o principal_a and_o most_o obvious_a i_o will_v but_o my_o wit_n can_v sound_v the_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n antiquus_fw-la a_o taste_n thereof_o shall_v content_v i_o chap._n 6._o of_o policy_n to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n princedom_n and_o wealth_n 1_o deprive_v man_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o 2_o of_o their_o ordinary_a preach_n and_o set_v up_o ambulatery_a monk_n and_o pryar_n to_o preach_v without_o control_n of_o church_n minister_n and_o officer_n 3_o schoolman_n too_o much_o subtlety_n and_o philosophy_n darken_n and_o corrupt_a divinity_n 4_o jesuite_n their_o original_n note_v their_o seminary_n their_o emission_n faculty_n insinuation_n and_o employment_n 5_o cardinals_z 6_o provision_n for_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o all_o sort_n by_o monastery_n etc._n etc._n 7_o auricular_a confession_n 8_o other_o policy_n to_o gather_v wealth_n 9_o purgatory_n a_o rich_a thing_n 10_o so_o be_v indulgence_n or_o pardon_n 11_o jubily_n 12_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n touch_v merit_n and_o justification_n etc._n etc._n 13_o thing_n hallow_v by_o the_o pope_n 14_o extraordinary_a exaction_n §._o 1._o the_o pope_n principal_a mean_n to_o make_v the_o people_n his_o own_o be_v 1_o to_o keep_v the_o divine_a scripture_n from_o they_o by_o which_o else_o they_o may_v discern_v his_o uniustifiable_a policy_n 8._o psal_n 119.105_o and_o 19.7_o 8._o for_o god_n word_n be_v the_o light_n and_o lantern_n of_o christian_n which_o s._n paul_n will_v have_v to_o dwell_v plentiful_o among_o they_o col._n 3.16_o and_o s._n peter_n will_v have_v babe_n in_o christ_n to_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o 1_o pet._n 2.2_o which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v they_o wise_a in_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n 2_o tim._n 3.15_o and_o perfect_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n verse_n 17._o lazaro_n chrysost_n serm_n 2._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n s._n chrysostome_n as_o do_v many_o other_o father_n also_o exhort_v all_o people_n layman_n especial_o tradesman_n carpenter_n etc._n etc._n to_o get_v they_o bibles_n more_o careful_o than_o any_o other_o tool_n of_o their_o occupation_n and_o the_o more_o they_o deal_v in_o the_o world_n and_o meet_v with_o temptation_n ill_a example_n and_o occasion_n of_o sin_n so_o much_o more_o careful_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o direction_n and_o armour_n against_o they_o christ_n himself_o command_v search_v the_o scripture_n joh._n 5.39_o and_o say_v matth._n 22.29_o do_v you_o not_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n so_o that_o herein_o they_o be_v anti-pauls_n and_o peter_n anti-chrysostomes_a and_o anti-christs_n that_o teach_v and_o practice_v the_o contrary_a 15._o matth._n 5_o 15._o hide_v the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n under_o their_o latin_a bushel_n from_o the_o unlatined_a people_n in_o god_n house_n yea_o and_o from_o the_o latine_v too_o under_o great_a penalty_n except_o they_o be_v licence_v sure_o as_o this_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o obscure_v the_o truth_n and_o lead_v man_n as_o captive_n blindfold_a whither_o they_o listen_v 2.26_o listen_v 2_o tim._n 2.26_o so_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n they_o love_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o be_v evil_a man_n and_o hate_v the_o light_n lest_o their_o deed_n shall_v be_v reprove_v joh._n 3.20_o §._o 2._o but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o take_v from_o man_n the_o true_a light_n except_o there_o be_v add_v also_o a_o false_a light_n to_o misguide_v they_o for_o man_n mind_n be_v natural_o desirous_a of_o knowledge_n and_o give_v to_o devotion_n must_v have_v that_o hunger_n satisfy_v and_o quiet_v either_o by_o truth_n or_o appearance_n their_o second_o policy_n be_v therefore_o 2_o to_o put_v down_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o preacher_n or_o to_o take_v a_o course_n that_o they_o be_v discourage_v disable_v grow_v unlearned_a and_o unfit_a to_o preach_v and_o set_v up_o other_o for_o saint_n paul_n appoint_v bishop_n to_o ordain_v presbyter_n 1.5_o presbyter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tit._n 1.5_o in_o every_o city_n and_o town_n to_o wit_v such_o as_o dwell_v among_o the_o people_n may_v best_o know_v the_o want_n sin_n capacity_n of_o their_o own_o people_n 18._o see_v tit._n 5_o 6_o 7_o etc._n etc._n 1_o tim_n 3.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o 5.22_o act_n 20.17_o 18._o and_o apply_v their_o teach_n the_o best_a way_n to_o inform_v reform_v and_o win_v they_o and_o such_o as_o be_v fix_v in_o their_o place_n may_v best_o be_v call_v to_o account_v by_o the_o bishop_n either_o for_o life_n or_o doctrine_n this_o be_v god_n excellent_a mean_n to_o preserve_v sound_a doctrine_n and_o sincere_a holy_a life_n of_o minister_n but_o when_o the_o pope_n ambition_n and_o covetousness_n grow_v so_o great_a that_o they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o christ_n heavenly_a kingdom_n but_o will_v super-adde_a unto_o it_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o make_v of_o christ_n militant_a church_n and_o church_n triumphant_a upon_o earth_n a_o visible_a church_n monarchy_n as_o doctor_n sanders_n entitle_v it_o over-top_v all_o other_o kingdom_n of_o civil_a prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n and_o draw_v out_o of_o all_o country_n the_o wealth_n and_o treasure_n of_o the_o world_n to_o maintain_v it_o then_o the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o christ_n ordain_v will_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n but_o will_v rather_o oppose_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n best_a policy_n to_o disgrace_n and_o disable_v they_o and_o to_o find_v out_o and_o set_v up_o other_o fit_a for_o their_o purpose_n to_o preach_v in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o authority_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o pope_n only_a and_o whole_o exempt_v from_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n and_o from_o all_o control_n of_o other_o minister_n or_o officer_n whatsoever_o so_o that_o these_o new_a preacher_n mere_o depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o maintain_v by_o
consider_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n 5._o §._o 4._o b._n usher_v grau_v quaest_a cap._n 6._o §._o 5._o and_o of_o your_o own_o learnede_a man_n speak_v especial_o of_o the_o time_n of_o satan_n let_v loose_a hesychium_n loose_a aug._n epist_n 80._o a●_n hesychium_n saint_n augustine_n say_v ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la app●rituram_fw-la impijs_fw-la tunc_fw-la persecutoribus_fw-la ultra_fw-la modum_fw-la saevientibus_fw-la the_o church_n shall_v not_o appear_v the_o impious_a persecutor_n then_o beyond_o measure_n rage_v 29._o rage_v greg._n in_o job_n lib._n 9_o cap._n 29._o gregory_n the_o church_n as_o one_o weaken_v with_o old_a age_n will_v scarce_o bring_v forth_o child_n by_o preach_v 219_o preach_v sermon_n d●_n consummatione_fw-la mundi_fw-la &_o antichristo_fw-la edit_fw-la colo●_n 1603._o pag._n 219_o ephraim_n syrus_n man_n will_v earnest_o inquire_v whether_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v any_o where_o upon_o earth_n and_o it_o will_v be_v answer_v no_o where_n 1._o where_n soto_n in_o 4._o s●nt_fw-la do_v 40._o q._n 1_o ●rt_n 1._o dominicus_n à_fw-fr soto_n your_o great_a schoolman_n say_v that_o faith_n will_v be_v extinguish_v in_o the_o world_n and_o under_o the_o lead_n of_o antichrist_n the_o city_n of_o god_n will_v be_v overthrow_v and_o of_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n your_o apocal._n your_o aquin._n comment_fw-fr in_o cap._n 9_o apocal._n aquinas_n say_v at_o first_o when_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v before_o he_o have_v enlarge_v his_o power_n there_o will_v be_v preach_v but_o after_o he_o be_v in_o his_o great_a domination_n then_o preach_v he_o mean_v preach_v of_o the_o truth_n will_v be_v particular_a and_o not_o as_o now_o general_a nor_o so_o solemn_a as_o now_o and_o before_o aquinas_n this_o write_v 7._o write_v apud_fw-la usher_n ibid._n valent._n post_n lit_fw-fr t._n usher_n ib._n §._o 7._o joachimus_n abbas_n florensis_fw-la the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v be_v hide_v for_o so_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n will_v be_v wise_a for_o themselves_o that_o they_o will_v not_o presume_v to_o preach_v public_o the_o darkness_n prevail_a not_o that_o they_o will_v cease_v to_o encourage_v and_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a more_o secret_o but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o preach_v open_o 5._o §._o 5._o haply_o you_o will_v appropriate_v this_o to_o be_v the_o last_o time_n of_o antichrist_n which_o your_o doctor_n hold_v to_o be_v very_o short_a but_o your_o valentinianus_n extend_v it_o to_o other_o former_a time_n and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n of_o which_o arianos_fw-la which_o nazian_n initio_fw-la orat._n 25._o ad_fw-la arianos_fw-la nazianzen_n write_v thus_o where_o be_v they_o now_o that_o object_n poverty_n unto_o we_o and_o insolent_o brag_v of_o their_o riches_n which_o define_v the_o church_n by_o multitude_n and_o scorn_v the_o little_a flock_n whereof_o at●an●●ij_fw-la whereof_o see_v hilar._n contra_fw-la aurent_fw-la b●sil_n ●pist_v 70_o 71._o &_o vitam_fw-la a●tonij_n inter_fw-la o●●ra_fw-la at●an●●ij_fw-la other_o father_n say_v commonitory_a say_v v●ncen●_n 〈◊〉_d commonitory_a that_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v shooken_v with_o the_o cruel_a tempest_n of_o that_o sudden_a heresy_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d b●c●●ri_n 〈…〉_o so_o that_o it_o defile_v not_o only_o the_o part_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n but_o entangle_v also_o the_o south_n and_o north_n and_o the_o land_n with_o the_o perfidiousness_n thereof_o luciferianos_fw-la thereof_o hieronymus_n contra_fw-la luciferianos_fw-la so_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n groan_v and_o wonder_v that_o it_o be_v become_v arrian_n but_o the_o agentes_fw-la the_o athanasius_n epist_n ad_fw-la solitariam_fw-la vitam_fw-la agentes_fw-la godly_a true_a follower_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o great_a prophet_n elias_n be_v hide_v and_o thrust_v themselves_o into_o hole_n and_o den_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o continue_v wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o 69._o for_o basil_n epist_n 69._o avoid_v the_o house_n of_o prayer_n which_o be_v then_o become_v school_n of_o impiety_n they_o be_v compel_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o hand_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o desert_n and_o commonitorio_n and_o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi in_o commonitorio_n the_o great_a part_n be_v thrust_v out_o and_o banish_v from_o the_o city_n be_v among_o the_o desert_n hole_n savage_a beast_n and_o rock_n with_o hunger_n thirst_n nakedness_n afflict_a wear_v and_o waste_v and_o 17._o and_o basil_n epist_n 17._o when_o they_o suffer_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o their_o father_n suffer_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o think_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n because_o their_o persecutor_n also_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n thus_o be_v it_o with_o the_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o arian_n time_n thus_o with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o middletimes_o after_o satan_n lose_n thus_o with_o the_o protestant_n in_o those_o late_a time_n all_o persecute_v by_o they_o that_o call_v themselves_o christian_n and_o catholic_n and_o hold_v the_o chief_a place_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o such_o be_v the_o paucity_n and_o obscurity_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o arian_n time_n that_o s._n ib._n s._n basil_n ib._n basil_n cry_v out_o a_o ecclesias_fw-la svas_fw-la prorsus_fw-la reliquit_fw-la dominus_fw-la have_v god_n very_o forsake_v his_o church_n be_v it_o now_o the_o last_o hour_n and_o do_v the_o defection_n or_o departure_n thus_o take_v beginning_n that_o now_o henceforth_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o son_n of_o perdition_n may_v be_v reveal_v etc._n etc._n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o very_a word_n of_o your_o own_o learned_a jesuite_n 6._o jesuite_n greg._n de_fw-fr val._n analysis_n fidei_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 4._o probatione_fw-la 4._o §._o jam_fw-la vero_fw-la §._o 6._o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_fw-la who_o grant_v as_o much_o as_o we_o desire_v now_o to_o refute_v the_o cavil_n of_o sectary_n say_v he_o note_n we_o do_v not_o say_v the_o church_n be_v always_o alike_o conspicuous_a or_o always_o alike_o easy_a to_o be_v discern_v for_o we_o know_v it_o be_v sometime_o toss_v with_o the_o wave_n of_o error_n schism_n persecution_n so_o that_o to_o the_o unskilful_a not_o wise_o esteem_v the_o reason_n of_o time_n and_o circumstance_n of_o thing_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v know_v which_o then_o special_o happen_v when_o the_o perfidiousness_n of_o the_o arian_n domineer_v well_o near_o in_o all_o the_o world_n for_o at_o that_o time_n write_v saint_n jerom_n that_o the_o ship_n of_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o overwhelm_v and_o hilary_n admonish_v in_o many_o word_n that_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v in_o tectis_fw-la &_o exteriori_fw-la pompa_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la in_o carceribus_fw-la &_o speluncis_fw-la not_o in_o house_n or_o temple_n and_o outward_a pomp_n but_o rather_o in_o prison_n and_o cave_n therefore_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o discern_v the_o church_n one_o time_n then_o another_o but_o this_o we_o affirm_v that_o it_o may_v always_o be_v know_v of_o they_o that_o weigh_v thing_n wise_o for_o in_o that_o very_a time_n when_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v hide_v compare_v with_o the_o time_n forego_v it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o with_o the_o multitude_n of_o innovator_n but_o rather_o with_o those_o few_o who_o follow_v that_o which_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a hold_v with_o great_a consent_n and_o long_a continuance_n thus_o write_v gregory_n of_o valence_n 7._o §._o 7._o out_o of_o which_o testimony_n i_o observe_v 1_o that_o he_o exclude_v the_o perpetual_a and_o uninterrupted_n glory_n of_o the_o church_n as_o not_o necessary_a nor_o any_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o and_o many_o of_o your_o side_n make_v it_o 2_o he_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v in_o a_o few_o and_o not_o always_o in_o the_o great_a multitude_n 3_o it_o may_v be_v only_o in_o secret_a place_n prison_n den_n and_o cave_n and_o not_o be_v find_v in_o temple_n and_o house_n 4_o it_o may_v be_v hard_a to_o be_v discern_v and_o know_v 5_o it_o be_v discern_v and_o know_v not_o to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o they_o that_o weigh_v thing_n wise_o 6_o it_o be_v not_o with_o innovator_n such_o as_o bring_v in_o novelty_n or_o new_a doctrine_n but_o with_o they_o that_o hold_v what_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o father_n hold_v with_o great_a consent_n and_o long_a continuance_n this_o note_n make_v whole_o for_o the_o protestant_n who_o reform_v the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o first_o and_o best_a time_n and_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v bring_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n half_a communion_n private_a mass_n sale_n of_o pardon_n and_o other_o thing_n unknown_a to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n antiquus_fw-la of_o these_o thing_n we_o shall_v consider_v hereafter_o §._o 2._o the_o
protestant_a church_n have_v evermore_o be_v so_o visible_a as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v subsection_n 1._o §_o 1._o for_o it_o have_v evermore_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n teach_v §_o 2._o as_o appear_v by_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o the_o creed_n but_o §_o 3._o the_o romist_n can_v allege_v the_o father_n for_o their_o new_a doctrine_n now_o prove_v your_o protestant_a church_n to_o have_v be_v so_o visible_a in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v or_o else_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o antiquissimus_fw-la it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a according_a to_o your_o own_o valentinianus_n to_o show_v that_o our_o church_n be_v sometime_o in_o some_o few_o and_o they_o hide_v as_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o wilderness_n revel_v 12.6_o and_o unknown_a to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o weigh_v not_o time_n and_o thing_n wise_o and_o be_v slander_v by_o the_o persecutor_n thereof_o as_o a_o false_a church_n but_o i_o will_v not_o take_v all_o advantage_n but_o give_v you_o a_o full_a visibility_n thereof_o at_o all_o time_n subsection_n 1._o first_o i_o say_v 1._o §._o 1._o our_o church_n for_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v for_o many_o age_n for_o neither_o it_o nor_o we_o teach_v any_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o such_o as_o be_v contain_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o necessary_o deduct_v from_o they_o by_o good_a consequence_n when_o the_o father_n be_v urge_v against_o b●llarmine_n in_o this_o point_n he_o yield_v notatis_fw-la yield_v de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la de_fw-fr lib._n 4_o cap._n 11._o §._o his_o notatis_fw-la that_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n public_o teach_v to_o the_o people_n which_o be_v necessary_a all_o that_o they_o write_v cap._n write_v de_fw-fr iustific_a lib._n 3._o cap._n 8._o §._o prima_fw-la ratio_fw-la this_o i_o have_v prove_v more_o full_o cap._n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v certain_a to_o be_v believe_v with_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v immediate_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o thence_o deduct_v by_o evident_a consequence_n now_o it_o be_v our_o general_n course_n to_o examine_v all_o doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n hold_v the_o scripture_n the_o undoubted_a oracle_n of_o god_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o our_o belief_n 36._o king_n james_n praemonition_n to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n pag._n 35_o 36._o as_o the_o father_n do_v and_o hold_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v for_o all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o the_o three_o creed_n and_o in_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n and_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o which_o be_v contain_v the_o full_a instruction_n for_o salvation_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 2._o §._o 2._o jrenaeus_fw-la bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o france_n live_v within_o 200_o year_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o disciple_n of_o those_o that_o hear_v saint_n john_n the_o apostle_n write_v against_o the_o heretic_n valentinian_o gnostic_n and_o other_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o 2_o chapter_n no_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o ground_n of_o religion_n than_o our_o ordinary_a catechism_n teach_v and_o in_o his_o three_o chapter_n show_v that_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o faith_n all_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n france_n spain_n the_o east_n egypt_n libya_n and_o all_o the_o world_n be_v found_v therein_o they_o sweet_o accord_v as_o if_o they_o all_o dwell_v in_o one_o house_n have_v all_o but_o one_o soul_n one_o heart_n and_o one_o mouth_n and_o this_o ground_n he_o lay_v for_o the_o confutation_n of_o all_o heresy_n q●arto_fw-la 〈…〉_o ●b_fw-ge ●e_v prescript_n advers●s_v hereti●o_o fol●o_fw-la q●arto_fw-la the_o like_a do_v tertullian_n liu●ng_v 200_o year_n after_o christ_n he_o give_v the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o deliver_v by_o the_o church_n the_o same_o which_o our_o church_n deliver_v and_o no_o other_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 35._o see_v king_n james_n p●aemonition_n p●g_v 35._o the_o three_o famous_a creed_n name_v the_o apostle_n athanasius_n and_o the_o nicene_n creed_n ordain_v for_o rule_n of_o christian_n belief_n and_o badge_n difference_v they_o from_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n we_o hold_v entire_o and_o firm_o and_o proclaim_v they_o ordinary_o in_o our_o church_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o father_n hold_v uniform_o and_o agree_v upon_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n we_o do_v with_o reverence_n receive_v but_o the_o particular_a or_o private_a opinion_n which_o any_o of_o they_o hold_v different_a from_o other_o father_n do_v not_o bind_v we_o now_o more_o than_o those_o other_o father_n then_o or_o the_o roman_n at_o this_o present_a the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n with_o reverence_n we_o receive_v as_o orthodox_n 161._o see_v b._n andrew_n ad_fw-la bellarmine_n apologiam_fw-la responsio_fw-la cap._n 7._o pag._n 161._o and_o so_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o our_o church_n and_o by_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o follow_a counsel_n be_v subject_a to_o some_o exception_n we_o therefore_o hold_v the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o primitive_a father_n hold_v uniform_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o hold_v no_o other_o point_n that_o do_v any_o way_n cross_a or_o weaken_v they_o may_v just_o challenge_v they_o for_o our_o predecessor_n and_o their_o church_n and_o we_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v all_o one_o antiquus_fw-la 3._o §._o 3._o we_o challenge_v the_o same_o father_n to_o be_v we_o also_o and_o we_o deduce_v both_o our_o bishop_n and_o doctrine_n by_o good_a succession_n from_o they_o which_o you_o can_v do_v but_o i_o require_v not_o of_o you_o a_o discourse_n of_o those_o time_n which_o either_o of_o we_o lay_v alike_o claim_v unto_o but_o of_o the_o time_n near_o unto_o luther_n show_v i_o any_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o hold_v luther_n doctrine_n for_o 500_o year_n next_o before_o luther_n time_n antiquissimus_fw-la you_o may_v challenge_v the_o primitive_a father_n for_o the_o point_n wherein_o you_o and_o we_o agree_v as_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n baptism_n and_o such_o like_a but_o you_o can_v challenge_v they_o to_o be_v you_o in_o those_o addition_n and_o corruption_n which_o they_o never_o know_v and_o which_o you_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n in_o late_a time_n and_o which_o make_v the_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o as_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o pope_n pardon_n private_a mass_n or_o communion_n without_o communicate_v half_a communion_n without_o the_o cup_n the_o pope_n transcendent_a supremacy_n and_o such_o like_a 4._o §._o 4._o but_o in_o call_v we_o to_o these_o late_a time_n you_o be_v good_a disciple_n of_o the_o poet_n horace_n who_o in_o his_o arte_fw-la poetica_fw-la say_v a_o witty_a poet_n must_v use_v this_o art_n the_o point_n which_o he_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o burnish_v fair_a and_o bright_a he_o must_v leave_v untouched_a et_fw-la quae_fw-la desperate_a tractata_fw-la nitescere_fw-la posse_fw-la relinquit_fw-la this_o be_v good_a poetry_n indeed_o in_o they_o but_o pitiful_a divinity_n in_o you_o to_o leave_v the_o best_a time_n and_o pure_a pattern_n and_o draw_v we_o to_o the_o worst_a but_o sectionis_fw-la 2._o subsectio_fw-la 2._o §_o 1._o propound_v 1_o the_o easternt_a and_o greek_a church_n 2_o the_o waldenses_n etc._n etc._n and_o 3_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o mislike_v and_o groan_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o desire_v reformation_n §_o 2._o the_o greek_a church_n condemn_v by_o the_o romish_a as_o heretical_a §_o 3._o be_v clear_v by_o scotus_n lombard_n aquinas_n and_o other_o now_o presuppose_v you_o yield_v we_o those_o best_a time_n wherein_o our_o church_n be_v very_o glorious_o visible_a we_o follow_v you_o to_o the_o worst_a wherein_o you_o propose_v unto_o you_o first_o the_o spacious_a and_o famous_a church_n of_o grecia_n 5._o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 3._o cap._n 5._o armenia_n aethiopia_n and_o russia_n which_o hold_v the_o same_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o hold_v and_o believe_v all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o we_o believe_v and_o refuse_v the_o same_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o we_o refuse_v be_v the_o same_o with_o our_o church_n true_a church_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o some_o defect_n error_n and_o division_n among_o they_o which_o stain_v their_o beauty_n and_o hinder_v their_o perfection_n but_o do_v not_o cut_v they_o off_o from_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n and_o so_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v they_o continue_v till_o this_o
church_n and_o monastery_n sigismundo_n cochleus_n lib._n 5._o &_o petrus_n messiah_n in_o sigismundo_n they_o break_v down_o the_o image_n there_o and_o not_o long_o after_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o joannes_n zisca_n a_o noble_a and_o victorious_a warrior_n they_o grow_v to_o be_v forty_o thousand_o strong_a in_o one_o army_n and_o get_v into_o their_o hand_n the_o castle_n of_o prague_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o bohemia_n short_o after_o contemn_v the_o curse_n and_o croysado_n of_o pope_n martin_n they_o win_v many_o victory_n under_o the_o lead_n of_o procopius_n and_o other_o captain_n but_o especial_o under_o zisca_n of_o who_o 5._o who_o lib._n 5._o cochleus_n say_v scarce_o any_o history_n of_o the_o greek_n hebrew_n or_o latin_n do_v mention_v such_o a_o general_n he_o build_v a_o new_a city_n of_o refuge_n for_o his_o man_n name_v thabor_n whereof_o the_o best_a of_o the_o hussites_n be_v call_v thaborite_n upon_o a_o new_a croisado_n of_o pope_n martin_n wherein_o he_o promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o all_o that_o will_v either_o fight_v or_o contribute_v money_n against_o the_o hussites_n forty_o thousand_o german_a horseman_n be_v gather_v to_o destroy_v they_o 6._o §._o 6._o but_o upon_o their_o approach_n they_o turn_v their_o back_n and_o flee_v not_o without_o some_o secret_a judgement_n of_o god_n say_v cochleus_n 6._o cochleus_n lib._n 6._o then_o be_v the_o council_n of_o basil_n call_v say_v ib._n say_v onuph_n ib._n onuphrius_n against_o the_o hussites_n and_o in_o that_o council_n contrary_a to_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 13._o constance_n session_n 13._o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o bohemian_o a_o argument_n of_o their_o great_a number_n and_o unresistable_a strength_n at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o book_n of_o hus_n full_a of_o wholesome_a and_o move_a doctrine_n live_v though_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o through_o the_o memory_n of_o his_o constant_a stand_n for_o the_o truth_n against_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o the_o council_n perfidious_a and_o outrageous_a burn_a of_o a_o man_n so_o learned_a so_o painful_a so_o great_o belove_v and_o lament_v his_o book_n be_v earnest_o desire_v and_o read_v and_o win_v many_o the_o like_a wrought_v the_o memory_n of_o jerom_n his_o admirable_a learning_n eloquence_n memory_n and_o patience_n in_o his_o death_n num_fw-la death_n poggius_n epist_n ad_fw-la leonardum_fw-la aret._n num_fw-la which_o poggius_n in_o a_o epistle_n do_v very_o much_o commend_v be_v a_o eyewitness_n and_o feel_o describe_v the_o same_o as_o one_o much_o affect_v with_o his_o excellent_a part_n record_v also_o by_o cochleus_n 3._o cochleus_n lib._n 3._o so_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o continual_a opposition_n against_o they_o they_o continual_o increase_v and_o in_o short_a time_n get_v a_o bishop_n suff●agan_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o prage_n 4._o prage_n ib._n lib._n 4._o and_o after_o he_o conradus_n the_o archbishop_n himself_o on_o their_o side_n to_o give_v order_n to_o their_o clerk_n and_o to_o help_v for_o the_o compile_n a_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n anno_fw-la 1421_o 5._o 1421_o ib._n lib._n 5._o which_o the_o archbishop_n and_o many_o baron_n afterward_o do_v stiff_o maintain_v and_o complain_v against_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n for_o offer_v wrong_n to_o those_o of_o their_o religion_n alexander_n duke_z of_o lituania_fw-mi give_v they_o aid_n and_o be_v reprove_v by_o pope_n martin_n 5_o for_o it_o and_o sigismond_n in_o fine_a in_o a_o treaty_n with_o the_o bohemian_o grant_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v promote_v to_o holy_a order_n the_o bohemian_o even_a hussites_n which_o be_v of_o the_o university_n of_o prage_n 8._o prage_n ib._n lib._n 8._o 7._o §._o 7._o aeneas_n silvius_n complain_v that_o about_o the_o year_n 1453._o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n be_v whole_o govern_v by_o heretic_n for_o that_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o all_o the_o commonalty_n be_v subject_a to_o one_o george_n or_o gyrzik●_n who_o then_o be_v governor_n under_o k_o ladislaus_n &_o afterward_o be_v king_n himself_o who_o with_o all_o his_o noble_n show_v undaunted_a constancy_n and_o resolution_n rather_o to_o die_v then_o forsake_v their_o religion_n cause_v the_o pope_n pius_n to_o tolerate_v many_o thing_n in_o they_o but_o his_o successor_n paul_n the_o second_o excommuicate_v king_n george_n publish_v a_o croisado_n against_o he_o and_o give_v his_o kingdom_n to_o mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n for_o which_o they_o war_v for_o seven_o year_n space_n and_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v a_o peace_n but_o while_o some_o prince_n mediate_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o king_n george_n his_o absolution_n 18._o abbot_n ib._n §._o 18._o he_o die_v anno_fw-la 1471._o not_o long_o before_o luther_n rise_n 8._o §._o 8._o and_o your_o 2._o your_o cochleus_n lib._n 2._o cochleus_n who_o write_v his_o history_n in_o luther_n time_n show_v that_o the_o hussites_n continue_v to_o those_o day_n for_o say_v he_o hus_n have_v slay_v soul_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o neither_o do_v he_o yet_o cease_v to_o slay_v they_o by_o the_o second_o death_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n hus_n do_v so_o rend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o at_o this_o day_n there_o remain_v a_o pitiful_a division_n in_o bohemia_n and_o 8._o and_o lib._n 8._o unto_o this_o day_n remain_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o thaborite_n in_o many_o place_n of_o bohemia_n and_o moravia_n under_o the_o name_n picard_n and_o waldenses_n and_o 12._o and_o lib._n 12._o in_o the_o year_n 1534_o he_o wish_v that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o hussites_n to_o return_v to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o german_n to_o cast_v out_o all_o new_a sect_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o very_a year_n 1517._o wherein_n luther_n begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o corruption_n of_o rome_n the_o council_n of_o lateran_n end_v under_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o and_o consultation_n be_v have_v there_o and_o then_o of_o reform_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o recover_v the_o bohemian_o to_o the_o unity_n thereof_o 154._o thereof_o see_v the_o book_n extant_a and_o d._n featlie●_n reply_v to_o fisher_n pag._n 154._o luther_n himself_o write_v a_o preface_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o waldenses_n then_o odious_o call_v picard_n dwell_v in_o bohemia_n &_o moravia_n do_v set_v for●h_n which_o he_o great_o approve_v &_o commend_v to_o godly_a man_n to_o read_v with_o thanks_n to_o god_n for_o the_o unity_n which_o he_o find_v betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o as_o the_o sheep_n of_o one_o fold_n beside_o we_o find_v many_o waldenses_n remain_v in_o france_n 9_o §._o 9_o in_o and_o after_o luther_n time_n 8._o time_n vesembe●_n oration_n of_o the_o waldenses_n citat_fw-la in_o history_n wald._n book_n 1._o cap._n 5._o see_v ib._n book_n 2._o cap._n 8._o anno_fw-la 1506_o lewis_n 12._o king_n of_o france_n hear_v much_o evil_n of_o the_o waldenses_n in_o his_o realm_n send_v the_o lord_n adam_n fumce_n master_n of_o request_n and_o parvi_n a_o doctor_n of_o sorbon_n his_o confessor_n to_o try_v the_o truth_n who_o visit_v all_o their_o parish_n and_o temple_n in_o provence_n find_v indeed_o no_o image_n nor_o ornament_n of_o mass_n or_o other_o ceremony_n but_o they_o find_v also_o no_o such_o crime_n can_v be_v find_v in_o they_o as_o be_v report_v but_o that_o they_o religious_o observe_v the_o sabbath_n day_n baptize_v their_o child_n after_o the_o order_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n teach_v they_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n upon_o which_o report_n the_o king_n say_v and_o bind_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n that_o they_o be_v better_a man_n than_o he_o or_o his_o people_n the_o same_o king_n be_v inform_v that_o in_o the_o valley_n of_o frassinier_n in_o the_o diocese_n of_o ambrun_n in_o dauphiney_a there_o be_v a_o certain_a people_n that_o live_v like_o beast_n without_o religion_n have_v a_o evil_a opinion_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n he_o send_v his_o confessor_n with_o the_o official_a of_o orleans_n to_o bring_v he_o true_a information_n thereof_o who_o find_v they_o all_o so_o true_o righteous_a and_o religious_a that_o the_o confessor_n wish_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o that_o he_o be_v as_o good_a a_o christian_a as_o the_o worst_a of_o the_o say_a valley_n 152._o valley_n joachim_n camerar_n in_o his_o hist_o pag._n 152._o king_n francis_n 1._o successor_n to_o lewis_n 12._o see_v the_o parliament_n of_o provence_n grievous_o afflict_v the_o waldenses_n of_o merindal_n cambrier_n and_o place_n adjoin_v appoint_a william_n de_fw-fr ballay_n lord_n of_o langeay_n than_o his_o lieutenant_n in_o piedmont_n to_o search_v and_o inform_v he_o more_o full_o of_o they_o upon_o who_o information_n of_o their_o piety_n honesty_n charity_n peaceablenesse_n painfulness_n
ad_fw-la rom._n as_o soon_o as_o man_n believe_v in_o he_o he_o be_v present_o instify_v consequent_o iud●cium_fw-la consequent_o in_o psal_n 142._o ne_o intre_n in_o iud●cium_fw-la man_n can_v have_v no_o merit_n to_o trust_v unto_o there_o be_v nothing_o proper_o his_o own_o but_o sin_n nat_n sin_n in_o 1._o cap_n gen_fw-la hom_n 2_o &_o serm_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o de_fw-la lege_fw-la nat_n yet_o faith_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o god_n grace_n will_v be_v fruitful_a in_o good_a work_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a faith_n and_o unprofitable_a he_o teach_v chananaea_n teach_v hom._n 4._o de_fw-la penitentia_fw-la &_o hom_n 12._o in_o mat._n &_o in_o 15._o de_fw-la muliere_fw-la chananaea_n prayer_n to_o god_n only_o and_o direct_o without_o run_v about_o to_o patron_n or_o intercessor_n mediator_n porter_n name_v james_n john_n peter_n and_o the_o choir_n of_o apostle_n take_v say_v he_o repentance_n for_o thy_o companion_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o advocate_n and_o go_v to_o the_o head_n fountain_n itself_o of_o the_o eucharist_n though_o he_o have_v many_o rhetorical_a and_o hyperbolical_a speech_n in_o the_o vehemency_n of_o his_o move_v the_o people_n to_o humble_a devotion_n as_o thou_o see_v touch_v eat_v christ_n and_o he_o suffer_v tooth_n to_o be_v fasten_v in_o his_o flesh_n and_o to_o be_v make_v red_a with_o his_o blood_n which_o alano_n which_o bellar_n de_fw-fr euchar_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o §._o quinta_fw-la regula_n &_o de_fw-la missa_fw-la l●b_fw-la 2_o cap_n 10._o §._o ad_fw-la illad_n valentinian_n tom_fw-mi 4._o in_o thom._n disp_n 6._o quest_n 4._o punct_a 3_o §._o quare_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la assentiendum_fw-la alano_n jesuite_n confess_v can_v be_v understand_v proper_o without_o impiety_n but_o tropical_o of_o the_o sign_n only_o not_o of_o the_o body_n which_o can_v suffer_v of_o we_o nor_o be_v violate_v yet_o he_o have_v much_o against_o transubstantiation_n for_o he_o say_v eucharist_n say_v hom._n the_o eucharist_n the_o table_n be_v furnish_v with_o mystery_n thou_o see_v bread_n and_o wine_n but_o think_v not_o that_o you_o receive_v the_o divine_a body_n of_o a_o man_n ne_fw-la putetis_fw-la quod_fw-la accipiatis_fw-la divinum_fw-la corpus_fw-la ex_fw-la homine_fw-la and_o mat._n and_o hom._n 11._o op._n imperfect_a in_o mat._n in_o his_o vasis_fw-la sanctificatis_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la mysterium_fw-la corporis_fw-la ejus_fw-la continetur_fw-la in_o these_o hallow_a vessel_n there_o be_v not_o contain_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n also_o matth._n also_o hom._n 83._o in_o matth._n if_o thou_o be_v incorporeal_a he_o will_v have_v give_v to_o thou_o his_o incorporeal_a gift_n naked_a but_o because_o thy_o soul_n be_v join_v to_o a_o true_a body_n in_o sensibilibus_fw-la intelligenda_fw-la tibi_fw-la traduntur_fw-la in_o thing_n sensible_a be_v deliver_v unto_o thou_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v again_o cor._n again_o hom._n 7._o in_o 1_o cor._n a_o unbeliever_n see_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n think_v it_o be_v simple_o water_n but_o i_o do_v not_o simple_o see_v what_o i_o see_v but_o i_o consider_v the_o purge_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o bury_n resurrection_n sanctification_n justice_n redemption_n adoption_n inheritance_n and_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o i_o judge_v they_o not_o by_o sight_n but_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o mind_n he_o write_v also_o 27._o also_o in_o 1_o cor._n hom_n 27._o against_o private_a communion_n when_o people_n do_v not_o communicate_v call_v now_o private_a mass_n and_o esse_fw-la and_o hom._n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la half_a communion_n without_o minister_a the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n against_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n he_o say_v lazaro_n say_v in_o matth._n hom_n 4._o &_o hom_n 3._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la &_o hom_n de_fw-fr lazaro_n he_o that_o wash_v not_o away_o his_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n shall_v find_v no_o comfort_n afterward_o matth._n afterward_o hom._n 7_o in_o matth._n as_o when_o a_o ship_n be_v sink_v or_o a_o man_n dead_a neither_o can_v the_o sailor_n nor_o physician_n help_v it_o when_o we_o be_v once_o go_v nothing_o be_v lest_o to_o satisfy_v for_o us._n lazaro_n us._n homilia_fw-la 2._o de_fw-la lazaro_n while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o have_v fair_a hope_n but_o be_v once_o depart_v it_o be_v not_o in_o we_o to_o repent_v afterward_o or_o to_o wash_v off_o our_o sin_n saint_n augustine_n write_v full_o and_o plentiful_o s●●n_n plentiful_o aug._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o alibi_fw-la p._n s●●n_n for_o the_o perfection_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o determine_v where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v and_o to_o end_v all_o controversy_n and_o 9_o and_o de_fw-fr doctr_n christ_n lib._n 2._o ca_fw-mi 9_o plain_a enough_o to_o ground_v all_o necessary_a doctrine_n upon_o 3._o upon_o de_fw-fr bapt._n contra_fw-la donatistas_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o that_o the_o church_n to_o which_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n belong_v be_v the_o company_n of_o faithful_a believer_n and_o that_o wicked_a man_n do_v not_o belong_v unto_o it_o saepe_fw-la it_o ib._n lib._n 7_o cap._n 51._o &_o the_o unitatate_n eccl._n cap._n ult_n &_o alibi_fw-la saepe_fw-la they_o may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o house_n but_o belong_v not_o ad_fw-la compagem_fw-la domus_fw-la 21._o domus_fw-la retract_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 21._o that_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o rock_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v build_v but_o christ_n &_o christ_n in_o psal_n 44._o &_o psal_a 60._o &_o and_o that_o we_o be_v christiani_n not_o petriani_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n 124._o christ_n de_fw-fr verb._n dom._n serm_n 13._o in_o mat_n &_o tract_n 124._o and_o upon_o the_o rock_n which_o peter_n confess_v say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n upon_o i_o not_o upon_o thou_o they_o that_o will_v be_v build_v upon_o man_n say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o of_o cephas_n that_o be_v peter_z but_o other_o that_o will_v not_o be_v build_v super_fw-la petrum_fw-la but_o super_fw-la petram_fw-la say_v ego_fw-la sum_fw-la christi_fw-la quomodo_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o pauli_n sic_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o petri_n say_v in_o nomine_fw-la christi_fw-la ut_fw-la petrus_n aedificaretur_fw-la super_fw-la petram_fw-la &_o non_fw-fr petra_n super_fw-la petrum_fw-la he_o write_v that_o 93._o that_o tract_n 118._o &_o 114._o in_o joan._n &_o libro_fw-la quaest_n vet_z &_o novi_fw-la test_n quaest_a 93._o the_o key_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v not_o give_v only_o to_o peter_n alone_o but_o in_o he_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o all_o the_o church_n may_v have_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v sin_n of_o antichrist_n he_o say_v 19_o say_v de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l_o b._n 20._o cap._n 19_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o 9_o and_o in_o psal_n 9_o extol_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v and_o come_v by_o wicked_a art_n to_o that_o vain_a height_n and_o domination_n and_o ibid._n and_o de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la ibid._n when_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v take_v away_o then_o satan_n by_o antichrist_n shall_v work_v mirabiliter_fw-la sed_fw-la mendaciter_fw-la with_o lie_v wonder_n saint_n augustine_n report_v and_o applaud_v saint_n cyprian_n speech_n to_o the_o donatist_n thus_o donatist_n thus_o de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatist_n none_o of_o we_o make_v ourselves_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n nor_o do_v by_o tyrannical_a terror_n compel_v his_o fellow_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o obedience_n see_v every_o bishop_n for_o the_o licence_n of_o his_o liberty_n and_o power_n have_v his_o proper_a judgement_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o another_o as_o himself_o can_v judge_v another_o but_o we_o must_v all_o expect_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o alone_o have_v power_n both_o to_o set_v we_o in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o judge_v of_o our_o act_n a_o doctrine_n plain_a against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n against_o transubstantiation_n though_o bellarmine_n cite_v he_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n deliver_v which_o we_o deny_v not_o he_o write_v plain_o deliver_v a_o rule_n how_o to_o know_v figurative_a from_o proper_a speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n ib._n scripture_n de_fw-fr doctrine_n christiana_n lib_n 3._o cap._n 15._o &_o ib._n that_o when_o a_o precept_n seem_v to_o command_v a_o foul_a or_o wicked_a act_n or_o forbid_v a_o good_a and_o profitable_a thing_n than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v figurative_o he_o give_v this_o for_o a_o example_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o this_o in_o the_o proper_a sense_n seem_v a_o foul_a and_o wicked_a thing_n
to_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v refer_v sixt._n god_n be_v the_o giver_n of_o all_o righteousness_n holiness_n and_o grace_n he_o forgive_v sin_n and_o restore_v sinner_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n to_o his_o favour_n and_o friendship_n seven_o god_n be_v the_o bestower_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o heavenly_a felicity_n in_o who_o the_o high_a happiness_n of_o bless_a soul_n consist_v of_o the_o other_o seven_o article_n concern_v the_o humane_a nature_n the_o first_o show_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sake_n debase_v himself_o from_o heau●n_n to_o these_o inferior_a part_n descend_v and_o assume_v the_o human_a nature_n and_o couple_v it_o to_o himself_o with_o a_o marvellous_a knot_n and_o bond_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o after_o that_o conjunction_n there_o be_v one_o person_n of_o both_o subsist_v in_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a and_o therefore_o in_o time_n he_o be_v conceive_v without_o father_n of_o a_o uncorrupt_a virgin_n the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o work_v in_o she_o that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o god_n man._n the_o second_o show_v the_o same_o son_n of_o god_n take_v humane_a nature_n of_o the_o undefiled_a virgin_n be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o many_o be_v at_o once_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o a_o pure_a five_o rgin_n the_o three_o show_v how_o chri●●_n our_o lord_n do_v most_o excellent_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v &_o work_v miracle_n die_v and_o make_v his_o end_n under_o pilate_n the_o judge_n and_o precedent_n and_o under_o he_o endure_v a_o unjust_a condemnation_n and_o suffer_v the_o most_o shameful_a kind_n of_o punishment_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o sustain_v the_o most_o bitter_a death_n for_o we_o and_o refuse_v not_o burial_n offer_v unto_o he_o in_o another_o man_n sepulchre_n the_o four_o article_n teach_v how_o christ_n after_o he_o have_v die_v upon_o the_o cross_n descend_v in_o his_o soul_n into_o infero●_n into_o or_o the_o low_a part_n infero●_n hell_n both_o that_o he_o may_v show_v himself_o conqueror_n of_o death_n and_o devil_n and_o also_o the_o deliverer_n of_o the_o father_n there_o detain_v and_o in_o his_o body_n he_o lie_v three_o day_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n the_o five_o profess_v that_o christ_n the_o three_o day_n return_v conquer●n●_n from_o the_o low_a part_n to_o l●fe_v immortal_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n by_o his_o own_o force_n and_o power_n do_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o sixth_o show_v how_o christ_n have_v perform_v the_o work_n of_o man_n redemption_n the_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o own_o power_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o may_v be_v exalt_v above_o all_o thing_n and_o he_o above_o all_o may_v be_v chief_o worship_v of_o all_o who_o sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o as_o god_n exercise_v equal_a power_n with_o the_o father_n and_o shine_v with_o divine_a majesty_n the_o seven_o article_n set_v out_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n when_o christ_n in_o his_o humane_a flesh_n shall_v descend_v again_o from_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o the_o terrible_a judge_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v open_o render_v unto_o every_o one_o according_a as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o his_o body_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n before_o who_o tribunal_n all_o man_n both_o good_a and_o evil_n shall_v stand_v whether_o that_o day_n of_o judgement_n find_v they_o yet_o alive_a in_o the_o flesh_n or_o dead_a before_o these_o 14_o article_n i_o have_v set_v down_o at_o large_a and_o in_o the_o full_a word_n of_o azorius_fw-la not_o that_o i_o approve_v every_o word_n and_o point_n therein_o but_o to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n what_o and_o how_o much_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o know_v and_o to_o believe_v explicitè_fw-fr to_o his_o salvation_n note_v he_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v explicitè_fw-fr who_o assent_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v tell_v he_o or_o which_o he_o conceive_v in_o his_o thought_n and_o he_o believe_v implicitè_fw-fr which_o believe_v any_o thing_n in_o generality_n and_o in_o that_o thing_n believe_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o as_o when_o a_o man_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n believe_v calce_fw-la azor_n ib._n cap._n 6._o in_o calce_fw-la thus_o say_v azorius_fw-la out_o of_o gabriel_n the_o schoolman_n §._o 3._o large_a abundant_a in_o superfluis_fw-la deficiunt_fw-la in_o necessarijs_fw-la be●●_n s●pr●_n l_o t●k_fw-fr see●ellar_n ●ellar_z in_o th●t_a chapter_n at_o large_a first_o these_o article_n upon_o due_a consideration_n will_v be_v find_v to_o have_v two_o fault_n they_o contain_v too_o much_o and_o too_o little_a too_o much_o for_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o namely_o that_o of_o the_o four_o article_n of_o the_o humanity_n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o deliver_v the_o father_n there_o detain_v as_o by_o bellarmine_n confession_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n testimony_n they_o shall_v be_v caterum_fw-la costerus_n ●uchir_o cap._n 1._o pag._n 49._o §_o caterum_fw-la costerus_n the_o jesuite_n say_v also_o that_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o faith_n necessary_a for_o all_o christian_n to_o know_v and_o to_o believe_v unto_o salvation_n be_v plain_o enough_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n second_o these_o article_n also_o contain_v too_o little_a for_o here_o want_v something_n that_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o creed_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o necessary_a instruction_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o call_v symbolum_n a_o badge_n or_o sign_n to_o distinguish_v christian_n from_o infidel_n and_o wicked_a people_n ob●●tes_n axor_fw-la ib._n cap._n 5._o §_o postremo_fw-la ob●●tes_n there_o be_v indeed_o three_o symbol_n or_o creed_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n for_o brief_a comprehension_n of_o the_o public_a necessary_a doctrine_n thereof_o for_o all_o christ_n ans_fw-fr to_o know_v and_o profess_v the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o n●cene_n and_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o three_o do_v not_o contain_v diverse_a doctrine_n but_o rather_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n set_v forth_o more_o large_o o●_n brief_o ●n_o more_o or_o few_o word_n more_o clear_o and_o distinct_o to_o confute_v heresy_n as_o they_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n in_o these_o creed_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o communion_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n which_o in_o these_o fourteen_o article_n be_v not_o mention_v three_o beside_o some_o other_o thing_n which_o the_o romanist_n account_v very_o necessary_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n that_o of_o purgatory_n that_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o they_o have_v whole_o leave_v out_o as_o they_o have_v do_v also_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o general_o all_o other_o thing_n almost_o which_o we_o refuse_v show_v thereby_o and_o so_o much_o gratify_v we_o that_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o ordinary_a christian_n to_o believe_v to_o salvation_n four_o and_o the_o view_n of_o these_o article_n may_v confirm_v any_o man_n in_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n because_o they_o steadfast_o believe_v except_v that_o one_o clause_n of_o one_o of_o they_o all_o these_o article_n which_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o say_v be_v sufficient_a for_o salvation_n neither_o do_v the_o protestant_n hold_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o that_o cross_v they_o §._o 4._o but_o bellarmine_n touch_v upon_o this_o point_n initio_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 11._o initio_fw-la in_o answer_v to_o irenaeus_n and_o diverse_a other_o father_n that_o say_v the_o apostle_n write_v all_o that_o they_o preach_v say_v more_o brief_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a for_o all_o man_n to_o salvation_n as_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o of_o some_o sacrament_n other_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a that_o without_o the_o manifest_a knowledge_n faith_n and_o profession_n of_o they_o a_o man_n can_v be_v save_v if_o so_o be_v that_o he_o have_v a_o ready_a will_n to_o receive_v and_o believe_v they_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v lawful_o propound_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o church_n and_o this_o distinction_n say_v he_o be_v gather_v from_o hence_o that_o without_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o first_o kind_n no_o man_n of_o a_o ripe_a age_n be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n but_o without_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n at_o least_o explicit_a of_o the_o latter_a man_n be_v ordinary_o
purgatory_n indulgence_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n communion_n of_o the_o laity_n in_o one_o species_n private_a mass_n and_o such_o like_a yet_o all_o this_o can_v prove_v you_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v false_a because_o yet_o you_o be_v defective_a in_o this_o that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o only_o true_a entire_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n you_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o and_o will_v not_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o that_o visible-hood_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v over_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n to_o who_o be_v give_v the_o high_a jurisdiction_n and_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o earth_n and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n to_o guide_v it_o right_n and_o keep_v it_o from_o error_n so_o that_o they_o that_o be_v not_o under_o his_o government_n and_o guidance_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o no_o where_o else_o neither_o can_v the_o thing_n now_o use_v which_o be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n any_o way_n nullify_v or_o disgrace_v the_o church_n since_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v judge_v profitable_a in_o these_o time_n which_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a in_o former_a age_n all_o inferior_a and_o private_a spirit_n must_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o head_n who_o christ_n have_v constitute_v over_o his_o church_n and_o do_v assist_v with_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o err_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v make_v prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o proof_n be_v plain_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n 16.16_o mat._n 16.16_o in_o the_o 16._o of_o saint_n matthew_n when_o saint_n peter_n have_v confess_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n christ_n answer_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o open_v and_o shut_v to_o bind_v and_o loose_v in_o the_o 21_o of_o s._n john_n christ_n say_v to_o peter_n 21.15_o joh._n 21.15_o since_o thou_o love_v i_o more_o than_o these_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n feed_v my_o sheep_n be_v thou_o the_o general_a pastor_n over_o my_o whole_a flock_n even_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 22._o of_o saint_n luke_n christ_n say_v i_o will_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v 22.32_o luk._n 22.32_o and_o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n conformable_a to_o these_o scripture_n the_o father_n do_v ordinary_o give_v unto_o saint_n peter_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o the_o mouth_n the_o chief_a the_o top_n the_o high_a the_o prince_n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o head_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n all_o which_o lay_v together_o and_o well_o consider_v do_v prove_v such_o a_o prerogarive_n in_o saint_n peter_n that_o the_o church_n teach_v and_o guide_v by_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n shall_v never_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n but_o be_v infallible_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n that_o bring_v to_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n and_o this_o be_v not_o promise_v to_o saint_n peter_n person_n or_o for_o his_o life_n only_o but_o to_o all_o his_o successor_n when_o christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 28._o in_o the_o last_o word_n whereupon_o these_o thing_n will_v follow_v 1_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 15._o see_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o religion_n in_o the_o west_n part_n pag._n 15._o now_o govern_v by_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v undoubted_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n deliver_v and_o practise_v the_o true_a mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o have_v the_o prerogative_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o from_o fall_v from_o god_n have_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n in_o custody_n to_o admit_v in_o by_o indulgence_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o shut_v out_o by_o excommunication_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v condemn_v so_o that_o in_o it_o there_o be_v a_o happy_a facility_n and_o without_o it_o a_o utter_a impossibility_n of_o salvation_n 2_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v of_o the_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n that_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o christ_n vicar_n and_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n upon_o earth_n and_o whosoever_o or_o what_o nation_n or_o people_n soever_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o he_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n §._o 3._o antiquis_fw-la be_v all_o this_o true_a and_o substantial_a it_o be_v able_a to_o charm_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v of_o your_o church_n and_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o and_o you_o do_v politic_o to_o keep_v this_o point_n for_o your_o last_o refuge_n and_o final_a ground_n of_o all_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o for_o if_o you_o can_v evict_v this_o you_o need_v no_o more_o if_o your_o pope_n be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o ascribe_v unto_o saint_n peter_n and_o thereby_o have_v full_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o can_v err_v all_o be_v you_o blackwell_n stapleton_n principio_fw-la doctr_n lib_n 6._o cap._n 2._o sanders_n rock_n of_o the_o church_n bristol_n motive_n 47._o etc._n etc._n see_v bellarm._n letter_n to_o blackwell_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o disputation_n and_o therefore_o your_o chieftain_n have_v great_a reason_n to_o fortify_v this_o piece_n with_o all_o the_o art_n and_o artillery_n their_o wit_n learning_n and_o power_n can_v afford_v they_o thereby_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o particular_a controversy_n wherein_o they_o find_v we_o be_v too_o strong_a for_o they_o this_o gorgon_n head_n alone_o be_v able_a to_o affright_v the_o simple_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o believe_v their_o own_o eye_n or_o see_v your_o palpable_a corruption_n or_o believe_v that_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v amiss_o with_o you_o be_v it_o never_o so_o foul_a and_z and_o manifest_v but_o alas_o dear_a friend_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o plain_o that_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o imaginary_a castle_n build_v in_o the_o air_n without_o ground_n or_o foundation_n and_o that_o all_o your_o man_n stretch_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n far_o beyond_o their_o meaning_n etc._n b._n jewel_n b._n bilson_n b._n morton_n b_o white_n d._n rainolds_n d._n field_n etc._n etc._n to_o answer_v their_o book_n and_o argument_n punctual_o will_v ask_v too_o great_a time_n and_o be_v a_o needless_a labour_n because_o our_o learned_a man_n have_v do_v it_o sufficient_o and_o often_o already_o but_o for_o your_o satisfaction_n i_o will_v show_v you_o first_o what_o dignity_n the_o ancient_a church_n have_v yield_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n second_o that_o the_o supremacy_n now_o claim_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n peter_n either_o by_o the_o scripture_n or_o three_o by_o the_o father_n but_o contrary_a that_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v against_o it_o four_o that_o the_o true_a primacy_n and_o prerogative_n of_o saint_n peter_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v personal_a and_o do_v not_o descend_v to_o his_o successor_n §._o 3._o 1._o for_o the_o first_o aeneas_n silvius_n who_o be_v afterterwards_o make_v pope_n romanam_fw-la aeneas_n silvius_n epist_n 288._o ante_fw-la concilium_fw-la niceness_n cue_n sque_fw-la sibi_fw-la vivebat_fw-la &_o paruus_fw-la respectus_fw-la habebatur_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la and_o call_v pius_fw-la secundus_fw-la say_v plain_o that_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 327._o year_n after_o christ_n little_a respect_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o be_v rome_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o world_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o antiquity_n magnificence_n dominion_n and_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o emperor_n there_o at_o that_o time_n the_o apostle_n use_v to_o plant_v church_n in_o the_o chief_a city_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n may_v best_o be_v propagate_v into_o the_o country_n adjoin_v city_n therefore_o be_v first_o christian_n the_o people_n dwell_v in_o country_n pagis_fw-la &_o villis_fw-la in_o page_n and_o village_n be_v not_o convert_v 31._o see_v d._n field_n church_n book_n 5._o epist_n to_o the_o reader_n &_o cap._n 27._o 30_o 31._o be_v call_v pagan_n or_o infidel_n but_o for_o their_o
he_o may_v answerable_o maintain_v he_o uphold_v his_o authority_n and_o all_o his_o proceed_n with_o the_o disgrace_n and_o beat_v down_o of_o all_o his_o or_o their_o adversary_n 322._o §._o 2._o see_v hist_n council_n trent_n lib._n 2._o pag._n 167._o 169._o 170._o a_o 1546._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 322._o this_o course_n be_v find_v to_o be_v very_o hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n and_o be_v complain_v of_o by_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o follow_a age_n and_o in_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n reformation_n thereof_o be_v very_o earnest_o call_v for_o by_o many_o bishop_n especial_o the_o spanish_a as_o a_o thing_n that_o utter_o abolish_v the_o apostle_n institution_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n practice_n &_o take_v away_o the_o bishop_n office_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o all_o thing_n be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o so_o have_v grow_v by_o degree_n from_o bad_a to_o worse_a for_o three_o hundred_o year_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o amend_v they_o wh_z le_z these_o ambulatory_a monk_n and_o friar_n do_v so_o swarm_v in_o the_o world_n with_o privilege_n to_o preach_v where_o and_o what_o they_o listen_v against_o the_o bishop_n will_n upon_o such_o great_a and_o frequent_a complaint_n in_o trent_n 170._o ibid._n pag._n 170._o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n take_v the_o matter_n into_o their_o consideration_n and_o they_o quick_o see_v that_o if_o these_o exemption_n and_o privilege_n of_o preach_v monk_n and_o friar_n be_v take_v away_o the_o pope_n authority_n will_v decay_v for_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o after_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n have_v be_v uphold_v by_o the_o benedictine_n monk_n exempt_v and_o after_o by_o the_o congregation_n of_o clunie_n and_o cistercium_n and_o other_o monastical_a assembly_n until_o the_o mendicant_a friar_n arise_v by_o who_o it_o have_v be_v maintain_v till_o that_o time_n and_o therefore_o to_o take_v away_o those_o privilege_n be_v direct_o to_o oppugn_v the_o papacy_n with_o a_o manifest_a depression_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n these_o motion_n therefore_o be_v by_o all_o possible_a mean_n to_o be_v silence_v note_v by_o the_o way_n something_a of_o the_o monk_n here_o name_v and_o the_o age_n they_o live_v in_o 5._o §._o 3._o tritem_fw-la de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustr_n ord_n benediclini_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o &_o 5._o tritemius_fw-la write_v that_o of_o the_o benedictines_n there_o be_v before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 15000_o religious_a house_n and_o that_o out_o of_o this_o order_n there_o have_v be_v take_v of_o pope_n eighteen_o cardinal_n one_o hundred_o and_o eighty_o archbishop_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o sixty_o four_o bishop_n three_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o twelve_o by_o which_o you_o may_v guess_v at_o the_o multitude_n power_n estimation_n and_o authority_n that_o this_o order_n have_v in_o the_o world_n 21._o azor._fw-la instit_fw-la moral_n lib._n 12._o c._n 21._o azorius_fw-la say_v when_o this_o order_n grow_v slack_a and_o swerve_v from_o their_o first_o rule_n the_o cluniacenses_fw-la arise_v out_o of_o they_o an_z 913._o and_o the_o c●sternienses_n anno_fw-la 1198._o and_o these_o be_v they_o that_o uphold_v the_o papacy_n so_o notable_o in_o those_o middle_a time_n of_o darkness_n when_o all_o learning_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a yea_o and_o almost_o all_o goodness_n be_v decay_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o ignorant_a man_n be_v apt_a to_o believe_v any_o thing_n and_o take_v it_o for_o currant_n and_o authentical_a which_o their_o seeming-ho_o churchman_n teach_v be_v no_o way_n able_a to_o examine_v the_o truth_n thereof_o dominici_n §._o 4._o legend_n aur._n jacobi_fw-la de_fw-la voragine_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la dominici_n c._n also_o in_o vita_fw-la dominici_n addita_fw-la lipomano_n de_fw-fr historia_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la these_o thing_n they_o say_v be_v make_v know_v to_o diverse_a devout_a monk_n by_o vision_n or_o revelation_n whereof_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la bishop_n of_o genua_n recite_v some_o in_o legenda_fw-la s._n dominici_n but_o in_o succeed_a time_n when_o the_o world_n eye_n be_v better_o open_v and_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o papacy_n special_o the_o waldenses_n or_o albigenses_n grow_v to_o great_a number_n and_o strength_n innocent_n 3._o hit_n upon_o better_a mean_n against_o they_o by_o the_o two_o order_n of_o beg_a friar_n new_o devise_v by_o s_n s._n dominick_n and_o francis_n there_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o profane_a story_n which_o i_o think_v the_o learned_a of_o this_o age_n have_v be_v ashamed_a of_o but_o that_o i_o find_v it_o new_o write_v again_o by_o costerus_n the_o jesuite_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o institution_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o a_o great_a chafe_n that_o the_o albigenses_n increase_v so_o fast_o and_o seem_v to_o overcome_v the_o world_n so_o that_o he_o say_v he_o will_v present_o destroy_v the_o world_n but_o the_o holy_a virgin_n his_o mother_n pray_v he_o to_o be_v patient_a a_o while_n that_o she_o may_v first_o send_v two_o man_n into_o the_o world_n s._n dominicke_n and_o s._n francis_n and_o if_o they_o can_v overcome_v they_o all_o shall_v be_v well_o if_o not_o then_o let_v he_o take_v his_o pleasure_n they_o write_v also_o that_o dominicus_n have_v devise_v a_o new_a order_n against_o heretic_n better_a than_o any_o former_a come_v to_o pope_n innocent_a 3._o to_o have_v it_o confirm_v the_o pope_n in_o some_o suspense_n whether_o to_o grant_v or_o deny_v it_o one_o night_n see_v in_o his_o dream_n the_o great_a church_n of_o lateran_n shrink_v in_o his_o joint_n and_o ready_a to_o finke_v to_o the_o earth_n whereat_o affright_v he_o think_v he_o see_v dominick_n present_o come_v and_o hold_v it_o up_o with_o his_o shoulder_n upon_o which_o vision_n he_o confirm_v his_o new_a order_n thus_o write_v vincentius_n in_o speculo_fw-la histor_n antoninus_n theodoricus_n bertrandus_fw-la lipomanum_fw-la bonav_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la francisci_fw-la cap._n 3._o in_o fine_a apud_fw-la lipomanum_fw-la baptista_n mantuanus_fw-la but_o bonaventure_n say_v it_o be_v saint_n francis_n that_o hold_v up_o the_o church_n see_v bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr successu_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap_n 9_o §_o 9_o 10._o howsoever_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o that_o write_v and_o they_o that_o believe_v these_o story_n have_v a_o strong_a conceit_n that_o these_o two_o order_n be_v magnae_fw-la spes_fw-la altera_fw-la romae_fw-la strong_a successive_a prop_n to_o uphold_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o so_o they_o be_v many_o way_n 1_o by_o their_o multitude_n for_o they_o quick_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n some_o say_v tale_n chawcer_n in_o the_o wife_n of_o bath_n tale_n as_o thick_a as_o the_o locust_n darken_n the_o air_n revel_v 9_o or_o as_o chawcer_n say_v as_o thick_a as_o mote_n in_o the_o sun_n beam_n 2_o by_o their_o credit_n and_o estimation_n among_o the_o people_n for_o they_o be_v receive_v and_o admire_v as_o most_o holy_a man_n vow_v poverty_n forswear_v riches_n land_n or_o other_o worldly_a good_n for_o christ_n sake_n content_v with_o their_o house_n garden_n and_o orchard_n live_v on_o alm_n beg_v or_o bring_v to_o they_o simple_o clothe_v with_o rope_n for_o their_o girdle_n and_o preach_v very_o diligent_o in_o all_o place_n special_o quaint_a tale_n and_o legend_n delight_v the_o people_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o credit_n make_v they_o untolerable_o audacious_a seq_fw-la see_v these_o thing_n at_o large_a in_o mat._n paris_n pag_n 404._o and_o 673._o and_o in_o b._n usher_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 9_o §._o 14._o &_o seq_fw-la in_o vilify_a all_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n creep_v into_o and_o usurp_a their_o office_n and_o magnify_v themselves_o as_o the_o only_a man_n of_o god_n privy_a council_n full_a of_o inspiration_n and_o revelation_n they_o only_o know_v how_o to_o distinguish_v lepram_fw-la à_fw-la lepra_fw-la one_o sin_n from_o another_o how_o to_o open_v hard_a and_o knotty_a question_n resolve_v all_o doubt_n give_v true_a penance_n and_o absolution_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o keep_v book_n of_o the_o name_n of_o all_o theit_n client_n that_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v their_o confessor_n and_o counselor_n and_o by_o such_o devise_n draw_v infinite_a store_n of_o people_n and_o much_o wealth_n after_o they_o whereby_o they_o build_v very_o stately_a house_n like_o king_n palace_n and_o profess_v poverty_n abound_v with_o all_o wealth_n and_o superfluity_n and_o so_o rob_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o their_o maintenance_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o such_o contempt_n and_o poverty_n that_o they_o make_v grievous_a complaint_n thereof_o to_o the_o emperor_n pope_n and_o cardinal_n in_o which_o complaint_n some_o bishop_n join_v with_o they_o yea_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o paris_n complain_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o their_o wrong_n also_o but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o
have_v not_o observe_v and_o hold_v that_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v teach_v we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o example_n by_o the_o lord_n indulgence_n pardon_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o his_o simplicity_n but_o to_o we_o that_o be_v now_o admonish_v and_o instruct_v of_o the_o lord_n pardon_n can_v be_v grant_v the_o ignorance_n therefore_o wherein_o our_o father_n be_v breed_v and_o train_v free_v they_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v well_o understand_v and_o know_v 39_o b._n usher_n serm_n at_o wans●ed_a pag._n 39_o may_v have_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o their_o soul_n health_n they_o know_v not_o these_o depth_n of_o satan_n they_o can_v not_o dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o such_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n this_o be_v a_o good_a and_o a_o happy_a ignorance_n unto_o they_o but_o this_o ignorance_n be_v now_o take_v from_o you_o 2.24_o revel_v 2.24_o and_o a_o more_o happy_a knowledge_n offer_v you_o happy_a if_o you_o have_v grace_n to_o receive_v it_o if_o not_o then_o remember_v that_o 3.19_o john_n 3.19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n more_o than_o the_o light_n and_o 15.22_o john_n 15.22_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o say_v our_o saviour_n they_o have_v not_o have_v any_o sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o no_o cloak_n or_o excuse_n for_o their_o sin_n there_o be_v therefore_o great_a difference_n of_o the_o former_a time_n and_o these_o then_o mean_v of_o better_a knowledge_n be_v deny_v to_o our_o father_n now_o it_o be_v afford_v to_o you_o that_o give_v some_o excuse_n to_o they_o this_o take_v all_o excuse_n from_o you_o they_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o night_n though_o they_o stumble_v and_o fall_v foil_n and_o soil_n themselves_o yea_o hurt_v their_o body_n and_o tear_v their_o clothes_n by_o rush_v upon_o bush_n or_o into_o bog_n yet_o be_v ordinary_o pitt●ed_v and_o pardon_v yea_o and_o commend_v for_o their_o desire_n and_o pain_n to_o find_v home_o but_o so_o be_v not_o they_o that_o rush_n into_o the_o same_o evil_n in_o the_o fair_a daylight_n god_n pity_v the_o blind_a that_o will_v fain_o see_v and_o can_v but_o will_v he_o pity_v they_o that_o may_v see_v and_o will_v not_o that_o harden_v themselves_o in_o their_o affect_a wilful_a blindness_n he_o deliver_v ionas_n from_o drown_v in_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n 41._o usher_n ibid._n pag._n 41._o will_v you_o plunge_v yourselves_o therefore_o to_o see_v if_o god_n will_v deliver_v you_o because_o we_o grant_v that_o some_o may_v escape_v death_n in_o city_n and_o street_n infect_v with_o the_o plague_n will_v you_o therefore_o choose_v to_o take_v up_o your_o lodging_n in_o a_o pest-house_n if_o you_o do_v we_o may_v well_o say_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o you_o but_o you_o may_v just_o fear_v that_o you_o dangerous_o tempt_v the_o lord_n to_o deliver_v you_o up_o to_o the_o efficacy_n of_o delusion_n and_o damnation_n 2_o thess_n 2.10.11.12_o you_o see_v therefore_o a_o manifest_a difference_n of_o the_o time_n the_o time_n of_o darkness_n before_o and_o the_o time_n of_o light_n now_o 4._o §._o 4._o mark_v now_o also_o another_o difference_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v in_o those_o time_n and_o as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o those_o time_n the_o error_n that_o be_v append._n d._n field_n church_n book_n 3._o chap._n 6._o &_o cap._n 47._o &_o append._n be_v the_o error_n of_o some_o man_n only_o in_o that_o church_n now_o they_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o those_o time_n man_n may_v be_v of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o of_o that_o faction_n now_o that_o church_n and_o faction_n be_v all_o one_o carlton_n b._n carlton_n the_o faction_n have_v so_o prevail_v by_o the_o art_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o the_o error_n which_o some_o hold_v before_o now_o all_o of_o that_o church_n must_v hold_v before_o they_o be_v hold_v with_o much_o liberty_n of_o judgement_n they_o be_v not_o determine_v man_n may_v assent_v or_o dissent_v and_o abound_v in_o their_o own_o opinion_n now_o they_o be_v all_o make_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la the_o absolute_a determination_n of_o that_o church_n and_o impose_v upon_o all_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n or_o curse_n annex_v that_o council_n be_v whole_o rule_v by_o the_o mere_a faction_n of_o the_o papacy_n have_v quite_o alter_v the_o state_n of_o that_o church_n take_v away_o all_o liberty_n that_o former_a age_n enjoy_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o make_v many_o new_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o therefore_o before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n noe._n d._n hall_n columba_n noe._n man_n may_v do_v well_o in_o that_o church_n when_o meat_n be_v set_v before_o they_o they_o may_v pick_v out_o the_o worst_a and_o eat_v the_o best_a pick_v out_o the_o unwholesome_a and_o feed_v on_o the_o wholesome_a pick_v the_o worm_n out_o of_o the_o apple_n pare_v away_o the_o corrupt_a and_o eat_v the_o sound_n take_v the_o spider_n out_o of_o the_o bowl_n of_o wine_n before_o they_o drink_v it_o but_o now_o where_o they_o be_v curse_v if_o they_o eat_v not_o all_o and_o compel_v to_o drink_v down_o all_o they_o that_o love_v their_o life_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o that_o society_n to_o answer_v your_o question_n therefore_o direct_o where_o be_v the_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n time_n that_o be_v where_o be_v any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o teach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o the_o protestant_n now_o teach_v 2._o sect._n 2._o subsect_n 2._o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o only_o apparent_a enough_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o eastern_a church_n and_o in_o the_o open_a separatist_n waldenses_n 3._o section_n 3._o etc._n etc._n from_o the_o romish_a corruption_n in_o these_o western_a part_n 4._o section_n 4._o but_o it_o be_v also_o within_o the_o community_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n itself_o even_o there_o as_o in_o a_o large_a field_n grow_v much_o good_a corn_n among_o tare_n and_o weed_n 1._o lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o there_o as_o in_o a_o great_a barn_n heap_v or_o garner_n be_v preserve_v much_o pure_a grain_n mix_v with_o store_n of_o chaff_n and_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o conference_n there_o be_v no_o other_o d_o fference_n betwixt_o the_o reform_a and_o the_o romish_a church_n then_o betwixt_o a_o field_n well_o weed_v 6._o §._o 5._o d._n field_n church_n book_n 3._o cap._n 6._o and_o the_o same_o field_n former_o overgrow_v with_o weed_n or_o betwixt_o heap_n of_o corn_n now_o well_o winnow_v and_o the_o same_o a_o heap_n late_o mix_v with_o chaff_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a thing_n to_o say_v 48._o b._n usher_n ser_n ibid._n pag._n 48._o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o field_n or_o the_o same_o corn_n now_o after_o the_o weed_n and_o fan_v as_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a it_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o same_o it_o be_v or_o in_o the_o same_o place_n after_o it_o be_v sweep_v and_o cleanse_v of_o the_o filth_n and_o dust_n or_o to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o galatia_n after_o their_o reformation_n occasion_v by_o saint_n paul_n writing_n be_v new_a church_n and_o not_o the_o same_o they_o be_v before_o because_o that_o in_o they_o before_o the_o resurrection_n be_v deny_v circumcision_n practise_v discipline_n neglect_v &_o christ_n apostle_n contemn_v which_o thing_n now_o be_v not_o find_v in_o they_o or_o to_o say_v naaman_n be_v not_o still_o the_o same_o person_n because_o before_o he_o be_v a_o leper_n and_o now_o be_v cleanse_v as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o nothing_o be_v alter_v that_o do_v constitute_v the_o church_n or_o be_v of_o the_o true_a essence_n or_o be_v of_o it_o the_o church_n be_v the_o same_o it_o be_v only_o the_o leprosy_n and_o other_o corruption_n be_v cleanse_v away_o and_o the_o health_n beauty_n and_o better_a habit_n restore_v that_o it_o may_v more_o comfortable_o breed_v and_o bring_v up_o child_n to_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v the_o bless_a and_o long-wished_a alteration_n that_o we_o have_v make_v and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n you_o have_v not_o make_v a_o unworthy_a altration_n from_o a_o corrupt_a church_n to_o a_o far_o worse_a and_o either_o altogether_o or_o very_o near_o none_o at_o all_o by_o continue_v increase_a establish_v the_o corruption_n you_o find_v make_v they_o now_o de_n fide_fw-la point_n of_o faith_n compel_v all_o to_o receive_v they_o and_o persecute_v even_o to_o extirpation_n as_o far_o as_o by_o power_n and_o policy_n you_o can_v the_o gainsayer_n of_o they_o initio_fw-la see_v before_o sect_n 4._o §._o 4_o initio_fw-la if_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v new_a you_o be_v new_a the_o
offering_n and_o he_o answer_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v and_o consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n because_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o holy_a offering_n make_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n modus_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 15._o §._o alter_fw-la modus_fw-la these_o and_o many_o other_o testimony_n bellarmine_n allege_v and_o labour_v by_o wit_n to_o elude_v say_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o but_o not_o only_o so_o he_o will_v not_o only_o have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o commemorative_n and_o representative_a but_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o the_o same_o host_n not_o differ_v from_o his_o body_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o immolation_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o he_o in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n 12._o council_n trid._n sess_v 22._o cap._n 2._o &_o alanus_n de_fw-fr euchar._n sacrif_n lib._n 2._o c._n 12._o the_o very_a same_o with_o his_o sacrifice_v upon_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n speak_v the_o controversy_n therefore_o be_v concern_v the_o proper_a and_o improper_a signification_n of_o the_o father_n term_n they_o take_v they_o as_o proper_o speak_v as_o of_o a_o true_a real_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n available_a in_o itself_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o turn_v the_o sacrament_n into_o a_o sacrifice_n profitable_a without_o receive_v and_o the_o priest_n office_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o preach_v and_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n matth._n 28._o mark_n 16._o be_v now_o only_o to_o say_v mass_n or_o offer_v up_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n frustrate_v christ_n institution_n with_o a_o gainful_a invention_n of_o their_o own_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o mistake_n of_o the_o father_n word_n of_o priest_n altar_n sacrifice_n rom._n minister_n the_o ordinary_a word_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n rom_n 15.16_o 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o 5._o &_o 4.1_o &_o 2._o cor_fw-la 3.6_o &_o 6.4_o eph._n 3.7_o cor_fw-la 1.7_o 23_o 25._o &_o 4.7_o 1_o thes_n 3.2.1_o tim_fw-la 4.6_o and_o their_o office_n or_o work_n call_v ministry_n act._n 6.4_o &_o 20.24_o &_o 21.19_o &_o 12.25_o 2_o cor_fw-la 58.1_o &_o 6.3_o eph._n ●_o 12._o col_fw-fr 4.17_o 4.2_o 1_o timoth._n 1.12_o 1._o tim_fw-la 4._o communion_n 1_o cor_fw-la 10.16_o table_n 1_o corinth_n 10.21_o the_o lord_n super._n 1_o cor_fw-la 11.20_o 2_o king_n 18.4_o see_v cassander_n consultatio_fw-la artic_a 7._o de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la §_o de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o the_o abuse_n arise_v thereupon_o we_o rather_o choose_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o more_o ancient_a father_n minister_n communion_n table_n sacrament_n than_o those_o word_n which_o be_v never_o use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n nor_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o by_o they_o purposely_o avoid_v for_o fear_n of_o be_v mistake_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o same_o reason_n therefore_o that_o move_v the_o bless_a apostle_n and_o primitive_a father_n to_o abstain_v from_o those_o word_n the_o same_o reason_n ●o●es_v we_o to_o do_v the_o like_a §._o 3._o antiquus_fw-la but_o why_o have_v you_o leave_v off_o any_o of_o those_o custom_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v by_o the_o father_n what_o reason_n have_v you_o for_o that_o antiquissimus_fw-la first_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o hezekiah_n have_v to_o break_v &_o abolish_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o have_v be_v of_o good_a use_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o edify_v of_o man_n but_o in_o his_o time_n be_v abuse_v to_o be_v a_o instrument_n of_o idolatry_n second_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v against_o the_o agapae_n or_o feast_n of_o love_n 1_o cor._n 11.19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o for_o as_o your_o rhemist_n acknowledge_v upon_o that_o place_n at_o first_o the_o rich_a christian_n make_v feast_n bring_v store_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_n to_o the_o church_n to_o joy_n and_o cheer_v up_o themselves_o and_o the_o poor_a that_o want_v when_o they_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n which_o feast_n be_v call_v agapae_n feast_n of_o charity_n these_o feast_n afterward_o through_o abuse_n become_v occasion_n of_o pride_n in_o they_o that_o have_v to_o bring_v of_o contempt_n to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o of_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n yea_o of_o reject_v the_o poor_a and_o of_o the_o foremost_a devour_v all_o without_o expect_v one_o another_o this_o occasion_v saint_n paul_n reproof_n of_o they_o then_o and_o the_o whole_a abrogation_n of_o they_o afterward_o 5._o august_n epist_n 119_o ad_fw-la januar._n cap._n 19_o see_v b._n morton_n appeal_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 3._o sect_n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o three_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o that_o saint_n augustine_n have_v to_o complain_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n grievous_a and_o burdensome_a to_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n which_o continual_o increase_v till_o our_o time_n and_o with_o the_o mulitude_n and_o painful_a or_o too_o careful_a observance_n thereof_o much_o decay_v the_o due_a observance_n of_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n as_o too_o many_o branch_n of_o the_o vine_n hinder_v the_o fruitfulness_n and_o therefore_o good_a husband_n prune_v they_o off_o four_o and_o final_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o have_v to_o disuse_n or_o abolish_v many_o custom_n tradition_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n former_o use_v whereby_o they_o justify_v us._n antiquus_fw-la name_v some_o of_o they_o i_o pray_v you_o §._o 4._o 28._o see_v b._n morton_n appeal_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o sect_n 10._o and_o the_o author_n there_o allege_v &_o bellar._n de_fw-fr euch._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 28._o antiquissimus_fw-la our_o b._n morton_n deliver_v you_o a_o dozen_o at_o once_o cite_v his_o author_n and_o place_n of_o their_o book_n for_o they_o 1_o the_o threefold_a dip_v in_o baptism_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o trinity_n think_v by_o dionysius_n basil_n athanasius_n jerom_n austen_n ambrose_n to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n now_o say_v binius_fw-la and_o canus_n abolish_v and_o one_o dip_v or_o sprinkle_v think_v sufficient_a by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o divine_n 2_o remove_v the_o old_a custom_n of_o taste_a honey_n in_o baptism_n speak_v of_o by_o tertullian_n and_o jerom._n 3_o of_o abrogate_a the_o ceremony_n of_o wash_v the_o foot_n in_o baptism_n speak_v of_o by_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o augustine_n epist_n 119._o cap._n 28._o 4_o decree_v also_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 21._o cap._n 4_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n unto_o infant_n use_v six_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unnecessary_a and_o unfitting_a maldonat_a comment_n in_o joh._n 6._o binius_fw-la 5_o ●he_v custom_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o baptise_v but_o only_o at_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n be_v abrogate_a be-because_a of_o the_o danger_n of_o common_a life_n durand_n 6_o night_n vigil_n mention_v by_o tertullian_n and_o jerom_n and_o praise_v by_o other_o father_n forbid_v to_o woman_n by_o the_o council_n of_o elliberis_n to_o be_v in_o churchyard_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o toledan_a and_o tridentine_a counsel_n binius_fw-la 7_o the_o stand_v at_o public_a prayer_n all_o the_o time_n betwixt_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n decree_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o observe_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o jerom_n witness_n and_o count_v a_o apostolic_a constitution_n now_o have_v leave_v no_o footstep_n of_o it_o durand_n cassander_n 8_o wash_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a use_v by_o the_o ancient_n mention_v by_o tertullian_n eusebius_n and_o gregory_n durand_n 9_o the_o feast_n of_o charity_n call_v agapae_n mention_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o clement_n reprove_v by_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n but_o in_o other_o church_n long_o continue_v the_o council_n of_o laodicaea_n forbid_v now_o they_o be_v forget_v bovius_fw-la 10_o the_o dispense_n with_o a_o apostolical_a canon_n concern_v the_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n bel._n binius_fw-la 11_o the_o neglect_v of_o the_o wednesday_n and_o friday_n fast_v in_o the_o east_n church_n by_o the_o 68_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o friday_n and_o saturday_n in_o the_o west_n by_o apostolic_a constitution_n mention_v by_o clemens_n jgnatius_n epiphanius_n athanius_fw-la and_o other_o bovius_fw-la 12_o of_o fourscore_o and_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n scarce_o 6_o or_o 8_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n say_v michael_n medina_n cite_v by_o d._n rainolds_n thes_n 5._o unto_o which_o i_o may_v add_v many_o other_o thing_n as_o 1._o the_o time_n of_o prohibit_v marriage_n much_o abridge_v for_o by_o some_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o namely_o that_o of_o laodicea_n celebrate_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o there_o be_v three_o time_n prohibit_v from_o the_o celebration_n of_o
marriage_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n still_o observe_v 10_o council_n laodice_n cap._n 25._o bellar._n de_fw-fr matrimonio_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 31._o §._o alterum_fw-la imp_v &_o §._o ratio_fw-la huius_fw-la council_n trident._n session_n 24._o ca._n 10_o 1_o from_o advent_a to_o the_o epiphany_n 2_o from_o septuagesima_fw-la until_o a_o week_n after_o easter_n 3_o from_o the_o day_n of_o rogation_n until_o a_o week_n after_o whitsuntide_n but_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n have_v only_o continue_v the_o first_o entire_a cut_v the_o second_v short_a by_o 16_o day_n begin_v with_o lent_n and_o end_v a_o week_n after_o easter_n and_o the_o three_o it_o have_v quite_o cut_v off_o 3._o council_n trident._n sess_v 24._o canon_n 3._o 2_o the_o degree_n prohibit_v marriage_n both_o enlarge_v and_o abridge_v for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v this_o canon_n if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o the_o degree_n only_o express_v in_o leviticus_fw-la of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n do_v hinder_v the_o contract_n of_o matrimony_n and_o dissolve_v it_o be_v contract_v and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o power_n to_o dispense_v in_o some_o of_o they_o or_o constitute_v that_o more_o degree_n may_v hinder_v and_o dissolve_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n here_o be_v a_o change_n of_o god_n law_n lose_v where_o god_n have_v bind_v bind_v where_o god_n have_v loose_v and_o they_o accurse_v that_o grant_v not_o this_o power_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n initio_fw-la bellarmine_n de_fw-fr matrimonio_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 29._o initio_fw-la and_o here_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o church_n custom_n also_o for_o bellarmine_n add_v recte_fw-la catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la conjugia_fw-la prohibuit_fw-la olim_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la septimum_fw-la postea_fw-la vero_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la quartium_fw-la gradum_fw-la consanguinitatis_fw-la &_o affinitatis_fw-la the_o catholic_a church_n in_o former_a time_n right_o forbid_v marriage_n to_o the_o seven_o degree_n and_o afterward_o to_o the_o four_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n 3._o council_n trid._n sess_v 21._o cap._n 3._o &_o canon_n 1_o 2_o 3._o 3_o and_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v bold_a even_o to_o change_v christ_n own_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n deny_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n and_o accurse_v they_o that_o hold_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o laity_n although_o the_o whole_a church_n use_v it_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o yet_o they_o hold_v themselves_o to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n that_o so_o long_o use_v it_o in_o their_o opinion_n therefore_o the_o abrogate_a or_o change_v of_o tradition_n or_o ceremony_n howsoever_o they_o declaim_v against_o protestant_n for_o such_o matter_n cut_v not_o man_n off_o from_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n that_o use_v they_o antiquus_fw-la indeed_o ceremony_n be_v invention_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o alterable_a by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n as_o time_n place_n and_o occasion_n require_v and_o the_o church_n may_v ordain_v new_a ceremony_n also_o as_o bellarmine_n teach_v lib._n 2._o de_fw-la effectu_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la cap_n 31_o §_o tertia_fw-la propositio_fw-la etc._n etc._n antiquissimus_fw-la i_o let_v pass_v much_o superstitious_a and_o sacrilegious_a doctrine_n which_o bellarmine_n there_o utter_v attribute_v almost_o as_o much_o to_o ceremony_n invent_v by_o man_n as_o to_o the_o sacrament_n ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o i_o accept_v what_o be_v grant_v that_o be_v invent_v by_o man_n they_o be_v alterable_a by_o man_n and_o not_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n the_o use_v or_o disuse_v of_o they_o make_v no_o alteration_n or_o difference_n in_o religion_n saint_n augustine_n discourse_v of_o the_o diversity_n of_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n in_o several_a church_n and_o country_n tell_v a_o story_n of_o his_o mother_n monica_n 118._o aug._n epist_n 118._o who_o come_v to_o milan_n and_o find_v that_o they_o fast_v not_o upon_o saturdaye_n as_o in_o her_o country_n they_o do_v be_v much_o disquiet_v in_o her_o mind_n as_o at_o diversity_n of_o religion_n and_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o she_o be_v resolve_v by_o saint_n ambrose_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n that_o such_o thing_n make_v no_o difference_n of_o religion_n when_o i_o come_v to_o rome_n say_v he_o i_o fast_o on_o the_o saturday_n when_o i_o be_o at_o milan_n i_o fast_v not_o so_o you_o to_o what_o church_n soever_o you_o come_v ejus_fw-la morem_fw-la serua_fw-mi si_fw-la cviquam_fw-la non_fw-la vis_fw-la esse_fw-la scandalo_fw-la nec_fw-la quenquam_fw-la tibi_fw-la observe_v the_o custom_n of_o that_o church_n if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v offensive_a to_o other_o nor_o other_o to_o you_o here_o observe_v rome_n and_o milan_n two_o great_a city_n in_o one_o country_n both_o in_o italy_n yet_o have_v several_a custom_n and_o ceremony_n which_o to_o some_o weak_a conscience_n through_o ignorance_n may_v be_v offensive_a yet_o be_v they_o all_o of_o one_o religion_n in_o substance_n and_o for_o rite_n or_o ceremony_n at_o that_o time_n milan_n be_v no_o more_o bind_v to_o obey_v rome_n than_o rome_n to_o obey_v milan_n §._o 5._o 4._o as_o your_o rhemist_n insinuate_v annot._n upon_o rom._n 11._o ver_fw-la 4._o but_o now_o if_o a_o man_n be_v not_o in_o all_o point_n though_o never_o so_o small_a nay_o in_o all_o tradition_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n or_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n late_o before_o luther_n day_n you_o count_v he_o not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n one_o of_o your_o idle_a pamphleteer_n idle_a for_o the_o matter_n he_o bring_v but_o too_o to_o busy_a in_o lie_v and_o rail_v one_o w._n g._n ashamed_a belike_o to_o add_v his_o full_a name_n professor_n in_o divinity_n write_v a_o book_n point_n and_o repoint_v it_o permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la 1619._o entitle_v a_o discovery_n of_o shift_n etc._n etc._n his_o principal_a matter_n be_v to_o show_v that_o before_o luther_n time_n no_o man_n be_v ever_o of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n his_o reason_n because_o all_o man_n hold_v one_o point_n or_o other_o at_o least_o tradition_n rite_n or_o ceremony_n different_a from_o the_o protestant_n which_o he_o labour_v to_o show_v by_o run_v through_o a_o great_a number_n of_o instance_n not_o consider_v that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v as_o well_o prove_v that_o never_o any_o man_n until_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n religion_n for_o he_o ask_v thus_o first_o be_v dionysius_n areopagita_n a_o protestant_n and_o answer_v no_o for_o he_o maintain_v tradition_n speak_v of_o altar_n place_n sanctify_v rasure_v of_o priest_n burn_v of_o incense_n at_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n answer_n to_o omit_v that_o many_o doubt_n and_o some_o censure_n the_o book_n impute_v to_o he_o to_o be_v counterfeit_n as_o casetan_n valla_n erasmus_n possevin_n and_o bellarmine_n see_v censura_fw-la librorum_fw-la roberti_n coc._n pag._n i_o ask_v again_o be_v dionysius_n areopagita_n a_o papist_n no_o for_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o condemn_v private_a mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o and_o transubstantiation_n see_v c●talogus_fw-la testium_fw-la veritatis_fw-la lib._n 1._o second_o be_v papias_n scholar_n to_o saint_n john_n evangelist_n a_o protestant_a no_o say_v w._n g._n for_o he_o defend_v tradition_n and_o peter_n primacy_n and_o romish_a episcopality_n how_o then_o be_v he_o a_o papist_n no_o say_v we_o for_o he_o teach_v such_o tradition_n as_o papist_n condemn_v as_o namely_o the_o error_n of_o the_o chibiast_n or_o millenaries_n and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o tradition_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n baronius_n anno_fw-la 118._o n._n 5._o etc._n etc._n &_o n._n 2._o three_o be_v ignatius_n a_o protestant_n no_o for_o he_o approve_a tradition_n limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la merit_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n not_o so_o but_o be_v he_o than_o a_o papist_n no_o for_o protestant_n cite_v he_o against_o transubstantiation_n and_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n private_a mass_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n catalogus_fw-la testium_fw-la lib._n 2._o &_o appendice_fw-la pag_n 2087._o bellarmine_n reject_v the_o greek_a copy_n of_o his_o work_n be_v against_o the_o papist_n four_o be_v tertullian_n a_o protestant_n no_o for_o he_o hold_v the_o montanist_n heresy_n be_v he_o a_o papist_n then_o no_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o he_o write_v sharp_o against_o the_o pope_n bud_a supremacy_n and_o against_o transubstantiation_n and_o for_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n to_o confute_v heretic_n see_v catal._n test_n lib._n 3._o five_o be_v saint_n cyprian_n a_o protestant_n no_o say_v he_o for_o he_o be_v a_o montanist_n also_o be_v he_o than_o a_o papist_n no_o for_o papist_n condemn_v montanist_n as_o well_o as_o protestant_n also_o he_o equal_v all_o the_o apostle_n with_o
question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o presence_n but_o of_o the_o manner_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o tooth_n or_o belly_n which_o he_o in_o a_o manner_n deny_v or_o to_o the_o soul_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n so_o also_o 6._o also_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr purgat_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 6._o bellarmine_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n allege_v a_o number_n of_o father_n as_o ambrose_n hilary_n origen_n basil_n lactansius_fw-la jerom_n but_o far_o from_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o question_n and_o quite_o beside_o their_o meaning_n for_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o fire_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o 171._o as_o sixtus_n senens_fw-la bibl._n lib._n 5._o annot_n 171._o sixtus_n senensis_n say_v and_o bellarmine_n cite_v they_o for_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n before_o the_o end_n bellar●ib_n end_n bellar●ib_n he_o cite_v many_o other_o father_n also_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n because_o they_o commend_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a though_o he_o well_o know_v that_o proceed_v from_o a_o 1159._o a_o s●arez_n in_o 3._o pa_n t_o ●●ome_v qu._n 59_o art_n 6._o disp_n 57_o §._o 1._o pag._n 1159._o error_n which_o they_o hold_v that_o man_n soul_n be_v not_o judge_v till_o the_o last_o day_n nor_o reward_v or_o punish_v but_o reserve_v in_o some_o secret_a receptacle_n unto_o the_o universal_a judgement_n which_o opinion_n be_v as_o contrary_a to_o purgatory_n to_o confirm_v which_o he_o allege_v they_o as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v guileful_o allege_v beside_o their_o meaning_n antiquus_fw-la these_o practice_n of_o allege_v counterfeit_n ●_z under_o the_o reverend_a name_n of_o ancient_a holy_a father_n &_o of_o corrupt_v the_o genuine_a writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o avoid_v or_o pervert_v their_o true_a meaning_n by_o any_o sophistical_a interpretation_n and_o of_o produce_v they_o in_o show_n to_o the_o purpose_n but_o indeed_o beside_o the_o purpose_n and_o the_o true_a question_n and_o by_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o mean_n to_o seek_v the_o victory_n by_o obscure_v the_o truth_n be_v thing_n to_o my_o heart_n and_o soul_n odious_a and_o abominable_a neither_o shall_v i_o believe_v that_o ever_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o man_n that_o profess_v religion_n but_o i_o shall_v think_v it_o rather_o a_o malicious_a slander_n devise_v by_o their_o adversary_n if_o i_o have_v not_o see_v manifest_a proof_n of_o all_o by_o their_o own_o book_n lay_v open_a before_o my_o eye_n but_o to_o let_v pass_v my_o just_a grief_n of_o this_o for_o the_o present_a i_o must_v add_v that_o chap._n 3._o of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o father_n and_o protestant_n and_o of_o their_o contention_n §_o 1._o many_o father_n be_v confess_v by_o all_o side_n to_o have_v hold_v some_o erroneous_a opinion_n which_o none_o be_v boun●_n 〈◊〉_d receive_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n be_v good_a catholic_a christian_n and_o our_o predecessor_n 2_o many_o difference_n also_o be_v note_v among_o romish_a doctor_n which_o yet_o hinder_v they_o not_o from_o be_v all_o account_v catholic_n 3_o the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n be_v nothing_o so_o great_a or_o many_o as_o those_o afore_o note_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o romish_a the_o especial_a one_o about_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v much_o less_o than_o it_o seem_v 4_o the_o pope_n unwillingness_n to_o reform_v manifest_a abuse_n by_o the_o way_n of_o general_a counsel_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o difference_n in_o reform_a church_n 5_o the_o protestant_n contention_n for_o god_n cause_n as_o they_o take_v it_o be_v nothing_o so_o hot_a or_o troublesome_a as_o the_o contention_n of_o many_o ancient_a holy_a father_n have_v be_v about_o small_a matter_n §._o 1._o antiquus_fw-la yet_o i_o can_v think_v but_o in_o the_o undoubted_a and_o uncorrupted_a writing_n of_o the_o father_n you_o find_v many_o thing_n differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o protestant_n differ_v among_o themselves_o the_o english_a from_o the_o german_a the_o german_a from_o the_o french_a one_o nation_n from_o another_o and_o in_o every_o nation_n one_o company_n from_o another_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o father_n may_v disagree_v from_o they_o all_o but_o to_o agree_v with_o they_o all_o that_o agree_v not_o among_o themselves_o it_o be_v impossible_a beside_o the_o protestant_n disagreement_n be_v so_o great_a with_o such_o bitter_a contention_n and_o virulent_a write_n one_o against_o another_o that_o they_o show_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o city_n at_o unity_n in_o itself_o and_o consist_v of_o man_n more_o mortify_v in_o their_o affection_n i_o tell_v you_o true_o these_o disagreement_n and_o contention_n do_v mighty_o alienate_v man_n affection_n from_o your_o religion_n antiquissimus_fw-la your_o objection_n have_v three_o part_n 1_o difference_n of_o the_o father_n from_o we_o 2_o difference_n among_o ourselves_o 3_o the_o hot_a contention_n of_o protestant_n for_o these_o difference_n let_v i_o answer_v they_o in_o order_n first_o i_o do_v ingenuous_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n do_v in_o many_o thing_n differ_v from_o we_o and_o no_o whit_n less_o from_o you_o though_o they_o be_v very_o reverend_a learned_a &_o holy_a man_n yet_o still_o they_o be_v man_n and_o have_v their_o error_n and_o imperfection_n your_o own_o man_n first_o discover_v they_o as_o cham_n do_v his_o father_n nakedness_n and_o tell_v his_o brethren_n gen._n 9_o and_o we_o can_v hide_v they_o though_o we_o glad_o will_v and_o with_o sem_fw-mi and_z japhet_n turn_v our_o back_n on_o they_o neither_o be_v it_o now_o expedient_a when_o you_o so_o much_o vilify_v the_o scripture_n and_o magnify_v the_o father_n beyond_o their_o right_n and_o seek_v to_o draw_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n rather_o than_o the_o rivulet_n of_o father_n and_o history_n then_o from_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v therefore_o tell_v you_o more_o necessary_o they_o willing_o what_o your_o own_o man_n have_v say_v of_o the_o father_n slip_n and_o error_n wherein_o not_o only_o we_o but_o themselves_o be_v constrain_v for_o the_o truth_n sake_n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o yet_o both_o we_o and_o they_o account_v the_o same_o father_n our_o predecessor_n for_o the_o other_o necessary_a point_n of_o save_a faith_n which_o they_o sound_o hold_v neither_o do_v we_o any_o way_n doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v bless_v saint_n in_o heaven_n 233._o baron_fw-fr a_o 118._o n._n 2._o senous_a bibl._n lib._n 5._o amos_a 233._o 1_o your_o cardinal_n baronius_n and_o sixtus_n senensis_n reckon_v up_o many_o father_n that_o hold_v the_o millenary_a error_n to_o wit_n papias_n the_o scholar_n of_o john_n the_o apostle_n &_o evangelist_n apollinarius_n irenaeus_n tertullianus_n victorinus_n lactantius_n severus_n sulpitius_n justin_n martyr_n &_o many_o other_o catholic_a father_n be_v deceive_v by_o papias_n bish_n of_o hierapolis_n a_o man_n much_o reverence_v for_o opinion_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o learning_n eusebius_n baron_fw-fr ib._n n._n 5._o etc._n etc._n &_o n._n 2._o cite_v eusebius_n but_o yet_o homo_fw-la ingenij_fw-la pertenuis_fw-la say_v eusebius_n who_o teach_v it_o as_o a_o tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o ground_v upon_o revel_n 20._o v._n 4_o 5._o the_o matter_n be_v this_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o resurrection_n the_o first_o of_o the_o godly_a to_o live_v with_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n on_o earth_n in_o all_o worldly_a happiness_n before_o the_o wicked_a shall_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n and_o after_o that_o thousand_o year_n the_o second_o resurrection_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v to_o eternal_a death_n and_o the_o godly_a shall_v ascend_v to_o eternal_a life_n 14._o baron_fw-fr a_o 373._o n._n 14._o this_o error_n continue_v almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o it_o begin_v before_o it_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heresy_n and_o be_v hold_v by_o so_o many_o churchman_n of_o great_a account_n and_o martyr_n that_o saint_n augustine_n and_o jerom_n do_v very_o modest_o dissent_v say_v senensis_n ib._n operib_n council_n carthag_n in_o cypriani_fw-la operib_n 2_o saint_n cyprian_n hold_v that_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v and_o so_o determine_v with_o a_o whole_a council_n of_o african_a bishop_n contrary_n to_o the_o african_a bishop_n in_o the_o time_n of_o aurelius_n and_o contrary_a to_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o italian_a bishop_n and_o yet_o be_v cyprian_n always_o count_v a_o saint_n a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n &_o a_o holy_a martyr_n 2._o bellar._n de_fw-fr confir_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o §._o respond_v ad_fw-la 1._o aug._n count_v 2._o ep_n pelag._n lib._n 4._o c._n 8._o aug._n
persuade_v to_o correct_v thing_n manifest_o amiss_o and_o to_o reform_v themselves_o there_o need_v no_o counsel_n tho●e_v need_v no_o syllogism_n there_o need_v no_o allege_v of_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o quier_n of_o these_o stir_n of_o the_o lutheran_n but_o there_o be_v need_n of_o good_a mind_n of_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o of_o humility_n etc._n etc._n thus_o write_v contarenus_n i_o may_v cite_v your_o thu_n anus_fw-la and_o many_o other_o that_o lie_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o division_n rent_n and_o difference_n in_o the_o church_n upon_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n bad_a statist_n and_o worse_a christian_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o other_o difference_n of_o moment_n do_v you_o find_v among_o the_o protestant_n antiquus_fw-la when_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o reform_a in_o france_n be_v call_v to_o the_o mompelgart_n colloquy_n in_o the_o year_n 1586_o they_o look_v for_o no_o more_o difference_n then_o of_o our_o lord_n supper_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o but_o they_o find_v more_o of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n of_o predestination_n of_o baptism_n of_o image_n in_o church_n antiquissmus_fw-la they_o find_v those_o five_o indeed_o and_o it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o so_o many_o several_a country_n kingdom_n and_o state_n abandon_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o make_v particular_a reformation_n in_o their_o own_o dominion_n without_o general_a meeting_n and_o consent_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o nor_o great_a difference_n than_o these_o and_o of_o these_o the_o first_o two_o of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o communication_n of_o property_n of_o the_o divinity_n and_o humanity_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o one_o and_o reconcile_v both_o alike_o concern_v the_o two_o next_o the_o difference_n among_o the_o father_n who_o notwithstanding_o still_o continue_v member_n of_o the_o same_o true_a catholic_a church_n may_v well_o excuse_v the_o difference_n among_o the_o protestant_n and_o for_o the_o five_o difference_n concern_v image_n it_o prove_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o both_o side_n therein_o full_o agree_v but_o these_o be_v not_o the_o tithe_n of_o the_o difference_n among_o your_o man_n and_o in_o these_o five_o which_o you_o reckon_v many_o of_o your_o own_o man_n differ_v one_o from_o another_o and_o yet_o with_o you_o be_v good_a catholics_n antiquus_fw-la happy_o i_o may_v insist_v upon_o many_o other_o difference_n among_o you_o if_o i_o carry_v a_o mind_n rather_o to_o number_v then_o to_o weigh_v they_o but_o i_o will_v name_v only_o one_o more_o the_o great_a and_o scandalous_a dissension_n among_o you_o about_o the_o government_n of_o your_o church_n betwixt_o the_o bishop_n and_o formalist_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o puritan_n or_o separatist_n on_o the_o other_o side_n antiquissimus_fw-la both_o these_o side_n agree_v in_o all_o necessary_a save_a point_n of_o doctrine_n but_o in_o this_o very_a point_n of_o government_n 120._o d._n field_n appen_n first_o part_n pag._n 120._o first_o pull_v out_o the_o beam_n out_o of_o your_o own_o eye_n before_o you_o stare_v upon_o our_o mote_n some_o of_o your_o doctor_n hold_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o general_n counsel_n some_o that_o he_o be_v not_o some_o hold_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o universality_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o himself_o other_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v only_o the_o prince_n bishop_n in_o order_n and_o honour_n before_o other_o which_o be_v equal_a in_o commission_n with_o he_o and_o at_o the_o most_o but_o as_o the_o duke_n of_o venice_n among_o the_o senator_n of_o that_o state_n some_o hold_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v judicial_o other_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v judicial_o some_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v temporal_a lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n other_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o some_o hold_n that_o though_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o temporal_a lord_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la he_o may_v dispose_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n other_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o meddle_v with_o prince_n state_n in_o any_o wise_a §._o 5._o antiquus_fw-la the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n you_o say_v be_v not_o great_a but_o i_o be_o sure_a their_o dissension_n be_v great_a bitter_a scandalous_a and_o odious_a while_o they_o write_v most_o virulent_a invective_n one_o against_o another_o &_o damn_v one_o another_o most_o grievous_o for_o their_o different_a doctrine_n without_o show_n of_o any_o touch_n of_o christian_n mortification_n or_o moderation_n antiquissimus_fw-la those_o that_o do_v so_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v it_o be_v far_o from_o i_o to_o defend_v they_o yet_o you_o know_v sometime_o very_o holy_a and_o well_o mortify_v man_n may_v happen_v into_o strange_a contention_n even_o for_o small_a matter_n saint_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n appoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o join_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o plant_v church_n among_o the_o gentile_n act_n 13.2_o which_o they_o do_v very_o laborious_o cheerful_o &_o with_o good_a success_n and_o though_o they_o suffer_v persecution_n in_o do_v it_o yet_o be_v comfortable_o deliver_v and_o always_o find_v god_n who_o have_v send_v they_o present_a to_o protect_v and_o bless_v they_o and_o afterward_o they_o be_v send_v by_o the_o church_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n 2._o act_n 15.1_o 2._o about_o question_n that_o trouble_v the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o apostle_n they_o be_v send_v again_o joint_o to_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n syria_n and_o cilicia_n and_o other_o nation_n to_o give_v they_o notice_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n to_o direct_v and_o confirm_v the_o brethren_n now_o have_v deliver_v their_o message_n and_o do_v their_o business_n impose_v at_o antioch_n and_o be_v so_o to_o go_v forward_o to_o syria_n and_o cilicia_n they_o fall_v to_o contention_n and_o for_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n to_o wit_n barnabas_n will_v have_v john_n to_o go_v with_o they_o and_o paul_n refuse_v he_o the_o contention_n grow_v so_o sharp_a that_o they_o part_v company_n and_o go_v several_a way_n see_v how_o flesh_n and_o blood_n boil_a in_o these_o good_a man_n heart_n even_o in_o those_o man_n heart_n who_o god_n have_v make_v special_a choice_n of_o and_o join_v they_o together_o for_o his_o most_o especial_a and_o extraordinary_a work_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n of_o god_n after_o fast_v and_o prayer_n have_v lay_v their_o hand_n and_o separate_v they_o to_o go_v joint_o together_o about_o that_o holy_a business_n who_o have_v power_n to_o do_v many_o miracle_n and_o extraordinary_a work_n 15._o act_n 15._o who_o make_v report_n of_o the_o wonderful_a success_n which_o god_n give_v they_o in_o convert_n the_o gentile_n to_o the_o great_a admiration_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o the_o apostle_n send_v again_o with_o their_o decree_n to_o the_o church_n even_o these_o holy_a man_n fall_v out_o for_o a_o light_a cause_n and_o part_a company_n haply_o some_o man_n may_v say_v be_v these_o to_o be_v account_v true_o mortify_v and_o holy_a man_n who_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o such_o a_o humour_n of_o pride_n and_o s●lfe_n will_v that_o neither_o of_o they_o will_v yield_v to_o other_o be_v these_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n love_n concord_n humility_n be_v these_o fit_a to_o teach_v other_o that_o can_v over-rule_v their_o own_o passion_n or_o have_v they_o no_o part_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o be_v man_n overbear_v with_o haughtiness_n wilfulness_n stubborness_n unfit_a for_o man_n of_o this_o profession_n able_a to_o make_v man_n utter_o distaste_v and_o abhor_v whatsoever_o they_o preach_v thus_o will_v some_o man_n gather_v out_o of_o this_o action_n but_o saint_n paul_n a_o choose_a vessel_n yet_o still_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n who_o know_v well_o he_o have_v his_o crack_n and_o his_o flaw_n himself_o gather_v another_o thing_n 2_o cor_fw-la 4.6_o 4.6_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o god_n who_o have_v command_v the_o light_n to_o shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n have_v shine_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o give_v the_o light_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n chirst_n but_o we_o have_v this_o treasure_n in_o earthen_a vessel_n that_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o power_n may_v be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o us._n second_o at_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a many_o churchman_n offer_v up_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n bill_n of_o complaint_n one_o against_o another_o 16._o zozoman_n hist_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 16._o which_o the_o emperor_n take_v very_o ill_a and_o say_v this_o be_v worse_a than_o
all_o the_o evil_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v endure_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v rend_v with_o contention_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o her_o own_o child_n for_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n among_o the_o learned_a at_o that_o time_n and_o their_o dissension_n say_v the_o story_n be_v so_o scandalous_a that_o many_o be_v thereby_o alienate_v from_o embrace_v christian_a religion_n but_o constantine_n appoint_v a_o day_n to_o receive_v all_o their_o book_n of_o complaint_n when_o it_o come_v he_o exhort_v they_o to_o unity_n and_o concord_n and_o to_o join_v hand_n for_o the_o holy_a work_n of_o their_o call_n and_o in_o one_o great_a fire_n he_o burn_v all_o their_o book_n of_o accusation_n etc._n matth._n 11.29_o 1_o pet._n 2.21_o etc._n etc._n three_o meekness_n and_o mildness_n be_v a_o excellent_a virtue_n in_o all_o christian_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n leader_n of_o other_o our_o saviour_n christ_n call_v we_o to_o learn_v it_o of_o himself_o as_o his_o peculiar_a virtue_n but_o yet_o when_o the_o cause_n be_v god_n and_o not_o our_o own_o we_o may_v learn_v also_o even_o of_o he_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o earnestness_n he_o pronounce_v many_o woe_n against_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n end_n read_v matth._n 23._o ver_fw-la 13._o to_o the_o end_n for_o dishonour_v god_n corrupt_v his_o religion_n mislead_v the_o people_n and_o abuse_v they_o he_o call_v they_o hypocrite_n damn_a creature_n child_n of_o hell_n fool_n and_o blind_a guide_n paint_a sepulchre_n full_a of_o hypocrisy_n and_o iniquity_n serpent_n and_o generation_n of_o viper_n 44._o joh._n 8_o 44._o and_o elsewhere_o say_v to_o the_o pharisy_n and_o other_o jew_n you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v etc._n etc._n 23._o act_n 8.20_o 23._o so_o saint_n peter_n to_o simon_n magus_n thy_o money_n perish_v with_o thou_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n 13.10_o act._n 13.10_o and_o saint_n paul_n to_o elimas_n who_o go_v about_o to_o turn_v sergius_n paulus_n the_o deputy_n from_o the_o faith_n o_o full_a of_o all_o subtlety_n and_o all_o mischief_n thou_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n thou_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n etc._n etc._n zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n be_v not_o only_o excusable_a but_o commendable_a even_o when_o it_o be_v mix_v with_o error_n which_o be_v condemnable_a 6._o phil._n 3.4_o 6._o for_o so_o saint_n paul_n reckon_v it_o among_o the_o thing_n wherein_o he_o may_v glory_v concern_v zeal_n i_o persecute_v the_o church_n respondetur_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont_n lib_n 4._o cap._n 7._o §._o &_o per_fw-la hoc_fw-la respondetur_fw-la four_o bellarmine_n somewhat_o excuse_v cyprian_n though_o sa_o the_o he_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v sin_v mortal_o in_o cross_v and_o vex_v the_o pope_n be_v in_o the_o right_n himself_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n at_o least_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v write_v such_o revile_v and_o reproachful_a word_n against_o the_o pope_n steven_n as_o he_o do_v in_o th●t_a epistle_n to_o pompey_n call_v the_o pope_n superbum_fw-la imperitum_fw-la caecae_fw-la ac_fw-la prauae_fw-la mentis_fw-la etc._n etc._n proud_a unskillful_a of_o a_o blind_a and_o corrupt_a mind_n yet_o say_v bellarmine_n also_o it_o seem_v cyprian_n sin_v not_o mortal_o because_o he_o sin_v only_o of_o ignorance_n think_v the_o pope_n perniciosè_fw-la errare_fw-la to_o err_v dangerous_o and_o while_o he_o so_o think_v he_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n not_o to_o obey_v he_o because_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v against_o his_o conscience_n thus_o say_v bellarmine_n five_o the_o question_n of_o rebaptise_v such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n seq_fw-la see_v d._n white_a way_n digress_v 21._o eu_n ch_n hist_o lib._n 7._o cap._n 2._o &_o seq_fw-la breed_v many_o broil_n in_o the_o church_n betwixt_o saint_n cyprian_n with_o the_o council_n of_o 80_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o also_o the_o metropolitan_o dionysius_n and_o firmilianus_n with_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n cappadocia_n galatia_n and_o cilicia_n on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o western_a bishop_n on_o the_o other_o part_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o church_n or_o catholic_a bishop_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o entangle_v in_o this_o discord_n and_o many_o bitter_a speech_n and_o contumelious_a action_n and_o writing_n pass_v between_o they_o six_o 21._o eus●b_n hist_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 21._o the_o strife_n betwixt_o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n about_o the_o day_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o excommunication_n the_o eastern_a church_n keep_v fast_o day_n the_o 14_o day_n of_o the_o first_o moon_n in_o march_n after_o the_o vernal_a equinoctial_a though_o it_o happen_v on_o the_o week_n day_n by_o tradition_n from_o saint_n john_n and_o saint_n philip_n 22._o ibib._n cap._n 22._o and_o many_o other_o holy_a man_n and_o martyr_n live_v and_o die_v in_o asia_n as_o bishop_n polycrates_n writ_v but_o in_o diverse_a synod_n hold_v 1_o in_o palestina_n under_o b._n theophilu●_n of_o caesarea_n and_o bish_n narcissus_n of_o jerusalem_n 2_o in_o rome_n un●er_o pope_n victor_n 3_o in_o pontus_n under_o palmas_n 4_o in_o france_n under_o irenaeus_n 5_o in_o greece_n and_o other_o place_n it_o be_v order_v that_o easter_n shall_v be_v keep_v not_o on_o the_o week_n day_n but_o on_o the_o sunday_n after_o the_o 14_o day_n and_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n 21._o ibid._n cap._n 21._o 23._o jbid._n cap._n 23._o procee_v in_o sin●_n to_o pronounce_v all_o the_o reveren●_n eastern_a bishop_n that_o keep_v it_o otherwise_o excommunicate_v and_o inveigh_v sore_o against_o they_o by_o letter_n but_o not_o only_o they_o but_o the_o western_a bishop_n also_o dislike_v victor_n do_v therein_o yea_o dissuade_v and_o sharp_o reprove●_n he_o especial_o jrenaeus_fw-la with_o his_o brethren_n of_o france_n allege_v that_o for_o such_o like_a difference_n as_o this_o for_o example_n for_o the_o k●●p_n ng_z of_o lent_n fast_o some_o only_a one_o day_n ib._n see_v the_o epistle_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o euseb_n history_n ib._n some_o two_o some_o more_o some_o forty_o day_n before_o easter_n and_o that_o by_o custom_n of_o long_a time_n before_o that_o age_n in_o such_o difference_n of_o fast_v they_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o peace_n one_o with_o another_o and_o never_o proceed_v to_o hate_v or_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o for_o such_o petty_a difference_n 13._o d._n field_n appendix_n 1._o part_n pag._n 116._o zozeman_n lib_n 8._o cap._n 15._o socrat._v lib._n 6._o cap._n 13._o seventh_o grievous_a be_v the_o difference_n and_o contention_n betwixt_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o epiphan●us_a the_o one_o refuse_v to_o pray_v with_o the_o other_o the_o one_o accuse_v the_o other_o of_o manifest_a breach_n of_o the_o canon_n the_o one_o curse_v the_o other_o and_o pray_v that_o he_o shall_v n●uer_o die_v a_o bishop_n the_o other_o curse_v he_o aga●ne_n and_o pray_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o return_v into_o his_o country_n alive_a b●th_o which_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o chrysostome_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n and_o die_v in_o banishment_n and_o epiphanius_n die_v in_o his_o return_n homeward_o y●t_o be_v both_o of_o these_o excellent_a holy_a and_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o thus_o contend_v eight_o and_o beside_o their_o own_o contention_n the_o take_n of_o part_n with_o they_o draw_v on_o much_o mischieife_n theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n join_v with_o epiphanius_n against_o chrysostome_n and_o with_o they_o join_v the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n as_o they_o fancy_v the_o empress_n be_v set_v against_o chrysostome_n be_v inform_v that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o sermon_n against_o woman_n she_o incense_v the_o emperor_n by_o who_o appointment_n theopilus_n call_v a_o counsel_n of_o bishop_n at_o chalcedon_n whither_o all_o chrysostom●s_n enemy_n resort_v and_o there_o pronounce_v he_o depose_v cyrinus_n bishop_n there_o call_v he_o impious_a arrogant_a and_o froward_a from_o thence_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n go_v to_o constantinople_n but_o none_o of_o the_o clergy_n meet_v they_o to_o do_v they_o honour_n there_o they_o object_v many_o crime_n against_o he_o and_o cite_v he_o to_o answer_v but_o he_o refuse_v to_o come_v except_v against_o they_o as_o his_o enemy_n and_o appeal_n to_o a_o general_a council_n but_o final_o they_o condemn_v he_o for_o obstinacy_n in_o not_o come_v unto_o they_o and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o bishopric_n this_o be_v noise_v in_o the_o city_n cause_v a_o great_a sedition_n multitude_n watch_v about_o the_o church_n to_o hinder_v his_o carry_v away_o an●_n cry_v out_o his_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v hear_v in_o a_o great_a council_n of_o bishop_n but_o by_o the_o emperor_n command_n and_o practice_v he_o
be_v drive_v out_o notwithstanding_o within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o to_o appeal_v the_o tumult_n of_o people_n he_o be_v recall_v 16._o socrates_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 16._o place_v ag●ine_o in_o his_o bishopric_n restore_v to_o preach_v and_o so_o continue_v a_o while_n but_o not_o without_o tumult_n wherein_o many_o be_v wound_v and_o many_o kill_v and_o when_o he_o be_v banish_v again_o the_o cathedral_n church_n at_o constantinople_n with_o the_o senate_n h●use_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n and_o burn_v to_o the_o ground_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o revenge_n baronius_n begin_v the_o story_n of_o this_o contention_n 51._o baron_fw-fr tomo_fw-la 5._o anno_fw-la 400._o nu_fw-la 51._o say_v thus_o i_o take_v in_o hand_n a_o great_a and_o lamentable_a narration_n of_o strife_n and_o direful_a persecution_n not_o of_o gentile_n against_o christian_n nor_o heretic_n against_o catholic_n nor_o of_o wicked_a man_n against_o good_a and_o just_a but_o which_o be_v monstrous_a and_o prodigious_a even_o of_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n one_o against_o another_o nine_o 44._o socrates_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 33._o d._n f●eld_v church_n lib_n 5_o cap_n 33._o &_o ●p●end_v 1_o part_n pag_n 116_o 117_o 118._o &c_n &c_n d_o hall_n columb●_n no_o pag._n 44._o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o three_o general_a council_n there_o arise_v great_a cont●ntions_n betwixt_o cyril_n of_o alexan_n ria_fw-la and_o john_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n two_o patriarch_n either_o of_o they_o thunder_a anathematism_n against_o other_o and_o deprive_v each_o other_o of_o their_o church_n theodore_v unhappy_o thrust_v his_o sickle_n into_o johns_n harvest_n against_o who_o at_o the_o instigation_n of_o euoptius_n cyrillus_n grievous_o inveigh_v theodoret_n accuse_v cyrill_a of_o apollinarisme_n and_o cyrill_n accuse_v theodoret_n of_o n_n storianisme_n and_o this_o fury_n spread_v so_o far_o that_o it_o draw_v almost_o the_o christian_a world_n into_o side_n so_o that_o when_o afterward_o theodoret_n will_v have_v come_v into_o the_o chalcedon_n synod_n the_o egyptian_a and_o other_o reverend_a bishop_n cry_v if_o we_o receive_v theodoret_n we_o cast_v out_o cyril_n the_o canon_n cast_v out_o theodoret_n god_n abhor_v he_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o first_o action_n of_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n and_o again_o in_o the_o eight_o action_n the_o bishop_n cry_v out_o open_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n he_o be_v a_o nestorian_n away_o with_o the_o heretic_n yet_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v full_o know_v and_o that_o theodoret_n have_v willing_o subscribe_v to_o the_o orthodox_n creed_n and_o to_o leo_n epistle_n the_o whole_a syno●_n cry_v with_o one_o u●yce_n theodoret_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a sea_n let_v the_o church_n receive_v her_o catholic_a pastor_n antiquus_fw-la your_o discourse_n have_v ●_o t_o i_o into_o a_o mixture_n of_o grief_n and_o ●o●_n grief_n that_o any_o of_o the_o holy_a ancient_a father_n have_v hold_v any_o error_n at_o all_o and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o bitter_a contention_n among_o they_o joy_n that_o see_v there_o be_v such_o they_o be_v not_o hide_v from_o i_o for_o that_o will_v make_v i_o more_o moderate_a in_o think_v of_o they_o though_o reverent_o as_o holy_a man_n yet_o still_o as_o man_n subject_a to_o humane_a infirmity_n and_o not_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o make_v their_o say_n rule_v of_o my_o faith_n or_o their_o do_n pattern_n of_o my_o life_n but_o altogether_o to_o make_v the_o most_o holy_a perfect_a infallible_a and_o unstained_a word_n of_o god_n the_o guide_v of_o both_o and_o it_o shall_v make_v i_o also_o more_o wise_a in_o esteem_v man_n now_o live_v reverent_o for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o i_o see_v in_o they_o notwithstanding_o their_o humane_a frailty_n such_o as_o i_o perceive_v the_o best_a saint_n of_o god_n have_v have_v but_o yet_o i_o see_v not_o any_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o lead_v i_o to_o judge_v how_o you_o can_v challenge_v the_o father_n to_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n more_o than_o the_o roman_n may_v challenge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o they_o i_o perceive_v well_o they_o differ_v from_o both_o in_o many_o thing_n wherein_o you_o both_o refuse_v they_o antiquissimus_fw-la you_o make_v that_o use_n of_o my_o discourse_n that_o i_o wish_v for_o the_o rule_n to_o direct_v your_o judgement_n i_o have_v point_v at_o it_o often_o and_o now_o i_o will_v brief_o and_o as_o full_o as_o i_o can_v lay_v it_o open_v unto_o you_o chap._n 4._o of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v the_o soundness_n and_o purity_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o church_n by_o this_o chapter_n have_v four_o section_n the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o rule_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o second_o of_o the_o rule_n enlarge_v and_o approve_v in_o this_o age_n the_o three_o of_o objection_n arise_v from_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o their_o answer_n the_o four_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v still_o to_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o rule_n the_o first_o section_n §_o 1._o the_o rule_n in_o general_n §_o 2._o open_v by_o distinction_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n §_o 3._o a_o necessity_n to_o have_v a_o short_a rule_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 4._o this_o rule_n be_v describe_v by_o saint_n paul_n §_o 5._o the_o practice_n of_o it_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o only_o deliver_v the_o most_o necessary_a fundamental_a point_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o baptize_v they_o §_o 6._o the_o like_a practice_n use_v by_o the_o follow_a primitive_a church_n to_o their_o catechumeni_fw-la before_o baptism_n §._o 1._o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v all_o christian_n and_o church_n by_o be_v this_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o do_v sufficient_o constitute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o hold_v no_o other_o opinion_n witting_o and_o obstinate_o that_o overthrow_n any_o of_o these_o fundamental_a point_n they_o be_v undoubted_o of_o the_o same_o true_a church_n and_o religion_n §._o 2._o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o rule_n note_n 1_o saint_n paul_n distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o foundation_n and_o that_o which_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n 1_o cor._n 3.10_o as_o a_o wise_a master-builder_n i_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n and_o another_o build_v thereon_o the_o word_n foundation_n be_v take_v two_o way_n first_o for_o the_o principal_a thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o whereupon_o our_o salvation_n be_v build_v that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v there_o verse_n 11._o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v then_o that_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n act_n 4.12_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v 1_o tim._n 3.16_o this_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v saint_n peter_n confession_n matth._n 16.16_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n upon_o which_o confession_n as_o saint_n augustine_n and_o chrysostome_n expound_v it_o christ_n say_v he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o second_o the_o word_n foundation_n be_v take_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o teach_v salvation_n only_o by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o ephes_n 2.20_o the_o house_n that_o be_v the_o household_n or_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v twelve_o foundation_n revel_v 21.14_o to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o doctrine_n whereby_o they_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o man_n salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n §._o 3._o 2_o although_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o every_o thing_n therein_o contain_v or_o from_o it_o necessary_o deduce_v be_v a_o fit_a object_n for_o faith_n to_o apprehend_v yet_o that_o all_o christian_n shall_v thorough_o conceive_v and_o uniform_o profess_v they_o all_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hope_v 22._o b._n usher_n serm._n at_o wansted_n pag_n 22._o nor_o in_o any_o age_n have_v be_v find_v as_o we_o have_v manifest_o prove_v chapter_n prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n variety_n of_o judgement_n in_o some_o point_n of_o lesser_a moment_n which_o be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v tolerate_v and_o must_v not_o dissolve_v the_o unity_n which_o all_o must_v hold_v in_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n heaven_n be_v not_o prepare_v for_o deep_a clerk_n only_o which_o understand_v all_o or_o for_o such_o as_o never_o differ_v in_o any_o opinion_n 12._o 1_o cor._n 132_o 12._o but_o even_o for_o such_o also_o as_o know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o see_v through_o a_o
the_o eunuch_n who_o embrace_v the_o old_a testament_n act_v 8_o 28-35-37_a etc._n etc._n and_o by_o saint_n peter_n to_o cornelius_n and_o his_o company_n who_o have_v before_o receive_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n acts._n 10.2_o 22_o 35_o 43._o and_o by_o saint_n paul_n act_v 13.14_o 16_o 32_o 38_o 39_o etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o convert_v to_o baptism_n upon_o add_v to_o their_o former_a knowledge_n these_o few_o principle_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o good_a life_n show_v that_o in_o their_o judgement_n they_o want_v no_o essential_a thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o make_n of_o they_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perfect_a christian_n or_o as_o our_o catechism_n call_v they_o member_n of_o christ_n child_n of_o god_n and_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o that_o if_o god_n shall_v take_v they_o out_o of_o this_o world_n in_o their_o first_o entrance_n into_o these_o principal_a ground_n of_o salvation_n without_o further_a knowledge_n or_o practice_n yet_o undoubted_o they_o shall_v die_v sufficient_a christians_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n §._o 6._o conformable_a to_o the_o apostle_n practice_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n baptize_v those_o that_o be_v catechize_v in_o the_o ground_n of_o save_a doctrine_n as_o the_o essential_a point_n of_o religion_n that_o constitute_v a_o christian_a as_o appear_v by_o irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n 2._o see_v irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n cite_v before_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 2._o sub_fw-la 1._o §._o 2._o who_o i_o allege_v before_o and_o by_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v ordain_v as_o badge_n of_o christian_n and_o difference_n of_o true_a believer_n from_o either_o unbeliever_n or_o heretic_n the_o western_a church_n use_v in_o their_o baptism_n that_o short_a form_n of_o confession_n comonnl_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o in_o the_o more_o ancient_a time_n be_v breefer_v then_o now_o it_o be_v as_o our_o learned_a bishop_n usher_n have_v punctual_o observe_v 28._o b._n usher_n serm_n at_o wansted_n p._n 28._o the_o mention_n of_o the_o father_n be_v maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o son_n death_n and_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o commuion_n of_o saint_n be_v whole_o omit_v happy_o as_o not_o necessary_a for_o all_o man_n to_o know_v as_o suarez_n say_v or_o sufficient_o imply_v in_o other_o article_n or_o know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o so_o not_o make_v difference_n betwixt_o christian_n and_o heathen_a these_o reason_n some_o for_o one_o point_n some_o for_o another_o but_o be_v in_o time_n make_v for_o better_a explication_n so_o full_a as_o it_o be_v now_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n have_v long_o receive_v as_o a_o badge_n of_o their_o faith_n distinguish_v the_o believer_n from_o the_o unbeliever_n the_o eastern_a church_n use_v in_o baptism_n a_o large_a creed_n 12._o usher_n ib._n p._n 30._o euseb_n ep_v apud_fw-la socrat_n l._n 1._o hist_o cap._n 8._o al._n 5._o &_o theodoret._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 12._o the_o same_o or_o very_o little_a different_a from_o that_o we_o call_v the_o nicene_n creed_n because_o the_o great_a part_n thereof_o be_v repeat_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n to_o which_o it_o be_v present_v by_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n with_o this_o preamble_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v before_o we_o both_o at_o our_o first_o catechise_n and_o when_o we_o receive_v baptism_n and_o as_o we_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o as_o we_o have_v both_o believe_v and_o teach_v when_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n and_o in_o our_o bishopric_n itself_o so_o believe_v at_o this_o present_a also_o we_o declare_v this_o our_o faith_n unto_o you_o to_o this_o the_o nicene_n father_n add_v a_o more_o clear_a explication_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o the_o son_n against_o the_o arrian_n which_o then_o trouble_v the_o church_n profess_v he_o to_o be_v beget_v not_o make_v and_o to_o be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n the_o second_o general_a council_n assemble_v 56_o year_n after_o at_o constantinople_n approve_v all_o the_o former_a add_v also_o something_o concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o then_o be_v oppugn_v by_o the_o macedonian_a heretic_n the_o same_o father_n also_o then_o add_v the_o article_n concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o privilege_n thereunto_o belong_v the_o roman_a church_n after_o the_o day_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a add_v the_o article_n of_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n and_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n recommend_v it_o unto_o we_o 3._o council_n trident._n seff_fw-mi 3._o as_o that_o principle_n in_o which_o all_o that_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n do_v necessary_o agree_v and_o the_o firm_a and_o only_a foundation_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v and_o by_o which_o alone_a our_o father_n sometime_o draw_v infidel_n to_o the_o faith_n overcome_v heretic_n and_o confirm_v the_o faithful_a such_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n so_o that_o in_o this_o creed_n they_o confess_v that_o only_a foundation_n and_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o unity_n whereof_o all_o christian_n must_v necessaril_o agree_v section_n 2._o §_o 1._o the_o rule_n enlarge_v and_o approve_v in_o this_o age._n §_o 2_o by_o azorius_fw-la out_o of_o the_o school-divines_a in_o 14_o article_n §_o 3._o some_o observation_n and_o censure_n of_o those_o 14_o article_n §_o 4._o the_o rule_n set_v down_o by_o bellarmine_n more_o brief_o §_o 5._o by_o d._n field_n far_o more_o sufficient_o in_o 6_o article_n with_o his_o judgement_n of_o the_o deduction_n therefrom_o evident_a or_o obscure_v §_o 6._o b._n usher_v distinction_n of_o superstruction_n upon_o the_o foundation_n §_o 7._o consequent_n of_o this_o doctrine_n §._o 1._o but_o because_o we_o see_v this_o foundation_n of_o faith_n have_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n continual_o be_v en●●ged_v by_o reason_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n arise_v in_o s●●erall_a age_n let_v we_o search_v a_o little_o further_a how_o the_o most_o judicious_a man_n do●_n bind_v it_o in_o these_o our_o day_n §._o 2._o azorius_fw-la the_o jesuite_n deliver_v the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o roman_a divine_n in_o 14_o article_n seq_n azorius_fw-la institu_fw-la tionum_fw-la moralium_fw-la part_n 1._o lib._n 8._o cap_n 5._o §_o at_o iuxta_fw-la ibid._n §_o tertio_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la &_o seq_n whereof_o seven_o concern_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o seven_o concern_v the_o humane_a all_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v explicitè_fw-fr with_o distinct_a understanding_n of_o all_o man_n of_o the_o first_o seven_o there_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o first_o that_o god_n be_v in_o nature_n and_o substance_n eternal_a infinite_a immense_a and_o in_o majesty_n high_a every_o where_o not_o only_o in_o power_n might_n and_o efficacy_n but_o also_o in_o deed_n and_o true_o present_a who_o have_v power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v the_o supreme_a lord_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o can_v with_o his_o beck_n and_o at_o his_o pleasure_n do_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v who_o know_v see_v care_v for_o and_o moderate_v all_o thing_n second_o the_o first_o person_n in_o nature_n and_o divine_a substance_n to_o wit_n the_o father_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o two_o divine_a person_n and_o therefore_o the_o begetter_n of_o the_o son_n and_o breather_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unbegotten_a subsist_v of_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o not_o receive_v and_o have_v his_o essence_n of_o another_o three_o the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v true_a god_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n only_o from_o all_o eternity_n the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n consubstantial_a and_o equal_a to_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o only_a word_n and_o express_v image_n of_o the_o father_n most_o perfect_o represent_v and_o express_v he_o four_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n from_o all_o eternity_n be_v true_a god_n coaeternall_a to_o they_o both_o coequal_a and_o consubstantial_a and_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o with_o equal_a service_n and_o honour_n five_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o by_o his_o only_a beck_n and_o word_n out_o of_o nothing_o produce_v all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a or_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o worl●_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o time_n and_o have_v produce_v they_o preserve_v direct_v care_v for_o and_o govern_v they_o with_o great_a goodness_n and_o wisdom_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n from_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v ng_z make_v of_o nothing_o do_v in_o time_n proceed_v so_o he_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o
admit_v act_v 2_o after_o one_o sermon_n of_o saint_n peter_n wherein_o he_o have_v teach_v the_o principal_a head_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n in_o one_o day_n 3000_o man_n be_v baptize_v who_o without_o doubt_n know_v nothing_o else_o but_o those_o necessary_a thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v add_v that_o after_o baptism_n they_o persevere_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v they_o learn_v what_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o christian_a mystery_n etc._n etc._n 15._o b._n usher_n sermon_n at_o wanst●d_n pag._n 32._o see_v also_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr christianarum_fw-la eccle_n successu_fw-la &_o statu_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 15._o this_o our_o bishop_n usher_n agree_v unto_o allege_v the_o apostle_n sermon_n to_o that_o purpose_n which_o treat_v only_o of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o receive_n whereof_o as_o of_o sufficient_a doctrine_n to_o make_v they_o christian_n man_n be_v baptize_v and_o this_o he_o further_o confirm_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n and_o the_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o creed_n of_o athanasius_n the_o creed_n of_o the_o east_n church_n 2._o see_v before_o cap._n 1._o sect_n 2._o subject_n 1._o §._o 2._o recite_v and_o confirm_v for_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o constantinople_n and_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v already_o §_o 5._o 4._o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 3._o chap_n 4._o our_o doctor_n field_n do_v more_o full_o and_o perfect_o describe_v those_o thing_n that_o so_o near_o touch_v the_o very_a life_n and_o be_v of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n that_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v particular_o and_o express_o to_o know_v and_o believe_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n he_o reduce_v they_o to_o six_o principal_a head_n first_o concern_v god_n who_o to_o know_v be_v eternal_a life_n we_o must_v believe_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o unity_n of_o a_o infinite_a incomprehensible_a and_o eternal_a essence_n full_a of_o righteousness_n goodness_n mercy_n and_o truth_n the_o trinity_n of_o person_n subsist_v in_o the_o same_o essence_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n coessential_a coeternall_a and_o coequal_a the_o father_n not_o create_v nor_o beget_v the_o son_n not_o create_v but_o beget_v the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o create_v nor_o beget_v but_o proceed_v second_o we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o that_o in_o they_o he_o may_v manifest_v his_o wisdom_n power_n and_o goodness_n that_o he_o make_v man_n and_o angel_n capable_a of_o supernatural_a blessedness_n consist_v in_o the_o vision_n and_o enjoy_n of_o himself_o that_o he_o give_v they_o ability_n to_o attain_v thereunto_o and_o law_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o it_o that_o nothing_o be_v make_v evil_a in_o the_o beginning_n that_o all_o evil_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n by_o the_o voluntary_a aversion_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n from_o god_n their_o creator_n that_o the_o sin_n of_o angel_n be_v not_o general_a but_o that_o some_o fall_v and_o other_o continue_a in_o their_o first_o estate_n that_o the_o sin_n of_o those_o angel_n that_o fall_v be_v irremissible_a and_o their_o fall_n irrevocable_a that_o these_o be_v become_v devil_n and_o spirit_n of_o error_n seek_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o by_o the_o misperswasion_n of_o these_o lie_a spirit_n the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n fall_v from_o god_n by_o sinful_a disobedience_n and_o apostasy_n that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v derive_v to_o all_o his_o posterity_n not_o by_o imitation_n only_o but_o by_o propagation_n and_o descent_n subiect_v all_o to_o curse_v and_o malediction_n yet_o not_o without_o possibility_n and_o hope_n of_o merciful_a deliverance_n three_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o for_o the_o work_n of_o this_o deliverance_n the_o son_n of_o god_n assume_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n into_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o divine_a person_n so_o that_o he_o subsi_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n without_o all_o corruption_n confusion_n or_o conversion_n of_o one_o of_o they_o into_o another_o that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n thus_o assume_v he_o suffer_v death_n but_o be_v god_n can_v not_o be_v hold_v of_o it_o but_o rise_v again_o and_o triumphant_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o he_o satisfy_v the_o wrath_n of_o his_o father_n obtain_v for_o we_o remission_n of_o sin_n past_a the_o grace_n of_o repentant_a conversion_n and_o a_o new_a conversation_n join_v with_o assure_a hope_n desire_v and_o expectation_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n four_o we_o must_v constant_o believe_v that_o god_n do_v call_v and_o gather_v to_o himself_o out_o of_o the_o manifold_a confusion_n of_o err_a ignorant_a and_o wretched_a man_n who_o he_o please_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o these_o precious_a benefit_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o happy_a number_n and_o joyful_a society_n of_o who_o we_o name_v the_o church_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v before_o or_o since_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o our_o flesh_n for_o both_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n hope_n and_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o they_o be_v seal_v unto_o eternal_a life_n though_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o degree_n and_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v the_o one_o more_o than_o the_o other_o five_o we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o for_o the_o publish_n of_o this_o joyful_a deliverance_n and_o the_o communicate_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o same_o the_o son_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o those_o his_o follower_n who_o he_o choose_v to_o be_v witness_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o do_v or_o suffer_v not_o only_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n but_o also_o the_o dispensation_n of_o sacred_a and_o sacramental_a assurance_n of_o his_o love_n set_v mean_n of_o his_o gracious_a work_n that_o those_o first_o messenger_n who_o he_o send_v with_o immediate_a commission_n be_v infallible_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n and_o leave_v unto_o posterity_n that_o sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o must_v for_o ever_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o these_o bless_a messenger_n of_o so_o good_a and_o happy_a tiding_n depart_v hence_o leave_v the_o ministry_n of_o reconciliation_n to_o those_o who_o they_o appoint_v to_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o work_n so_o happy_o begin_v by_o they_o last_o we_o must_v know_v and_o be_v assure_o persuade_v that_o see_v the_o renovation_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o mind_n be_v not_o perfect_a and_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n still_o remain_v corruptible_a be_v not_o yet_o therefore_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o time_n when_o christ_n shall_v return_v again_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o that_o with_o repentant_a sorrow_n turn_v from_o their_o evil_a and_o wicked_a way_n while_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o accept_a time_n and_o day_n of_o salvation_n and_o contrary_a way_n cast_v out_o into_o utter_a darkness_n and_o into_o the_o fire_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v quench_v all_o those_o that_o neglect_n &_o despise_v so_o great_a salvation_n all_o these_o thing_n and_o these_o only_a do_v direct_o concern_v the_o matter_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n say_v doctor_n field_n these_o thing_n say_v he_o make_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n whereof_o a_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a and_o be_v save_v by_o these_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n measure_v and_o make_v their_o sermon_n commentary_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n this_o rule_n be_v deliver_v by_o tertullian_n irenaeus_n 2._o tertull._n de_fw-fr praescriptionibus_fw-la adversus_fw-la hareticos_fw-la &_o adversus_fw-la praxcam_fw-la irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 3._o see_v here_o before_o cap._n 1._o sect_n 2._o subsect_n 1._o §._o 2._o and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n and_o with_o addition_n of_o conclusion_n most_o easy_o clear_o and_o avoidable_o deduce_v hence_o by_o theodoret_n in_o his_o epitome_n dogmatum_fw-la for_o a_o second_o sort_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o attend_v on_o these_o first_o as_o consequent_n deduce_v from_o they_o or_o some_o way_n appertain_v to_o they_o such_o as_o a_o man_n be_v persuade_v of_o these_o will_v see_v the_o necessary_a consequence_n and_o deduction_n of_o they_o from_o these_o if_o they_o be_v propound_v unto_o he_o as_o that_o there_o be_v two_o will_n in_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n remission_n of_o sin_n or_o hope_v of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n in_o such_o second_o thing_n clear_o deduce_v from_o the_o first_o principle_n if_o a_o man_n
pour_v abroad_o his_o gift_n into_o the_o whole_a body_n that_o the_o church_n may_v stand_v upon_o peter_n firmness_n 2.15_o king_n james_n remonstrance_n pag._n 163._o english_a 1_o cor._n 2.15_o in_o these_o latter_a time_n they_o have_v find_v out_o more_o text_n but_o no_o whit_n better_a for_o their_o purpose_n then_o these_o our_o learned_a king_n james_n in_o his_o remonstrance_n to_o the_o cardinal_n peron_n recite_v some_o of_o the_o chief_a saint_n paul_n say_v the_o spiritual_a man_n discern_v all_o thing_n ergo_fw-la they_o gather_v the_o pope_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o all_o man_n and_o matter_n 21.2_o mat._n 28.18_o mat._n 8.31_o mat._n 21.2_o christ_n say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n ergo_fw-la to_o his_o vicar_n the_o devil_n say_v if_o thou_o cast_v we_o out_o send_v we_o into_o the_o hear_v of_o swine_n and_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n you_o shall_v find_v a_o ass_n colt_n bind_v lose_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o to_o i_o this_o show_v that_o christ_n dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n ergo_fw-la so_o must_v his_o vicar_n 10.13_o joh._n 21.15_o act._n 10.13_o jesus_n not_o only_o command_v peter_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n but_o also_o say_v arise_v kill_v and_o eat_v therefore_o say_v baronius_n duplex_fw-la est_fw-la petri_n officium_fw-la unum_fw-la pascere_fw-la alterum_fw-la occidedere_fw-la peter_n have_v two_o office_n one_o to_o feed_v another_o to_o kill_v belike_o peter_n be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o house_n and_o enter_v upon_o his_o second_o office_n to_o kill_v and_o devour_v 1.10_o jer._n 1.10_o god_n say_v to_o jeremy_n i_o have_v establishd_a thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n to_o wit_n to_o preach_v god_n promise_n and_o threaten_n 29._o luk._n 22.38_o mat._n 26.52_o molina_n jesuita_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la tract_n 2_o disp_n 29._o and_o peter_n say_v to_o christ_n see_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n and_o christ_n answer_v it_o be_v sufficient_a not_o too_o many_o also_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o sheath_n ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n and_o two_o sword_n one_o spiritual_a the_o other_o temporal_a 45.16_o psal_n 45.16_o it_o be_v say_v psal_n 45._o in_o stead_n of_o thy_o father_n thou_o shall_v have_v child_n who_o thou_o shall_v make_v prince_n in_o all_o land_n 6.3_o joh._n 12.32_o 1._o cor._n 6.3_o christ_n say_v if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o thing_n unto_o i_o and_o saint_n paul_n know_v you_o not_o that_o we_o paul_n and_o the_o corinthian_n etc._n etc._n shall_v judge_v the_o angel_n how_o much_o more_o the_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o this_o life_n upon_o these_o place_n the_o papal_a monarchy_n for_o temporal_a cause_n have_v be_v build_v in_o these_o latter_a age_n as_o in_o former_a time_n pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o sanctam_fw-la extravag_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la grapple_v and_o tug_v with_o philip_n the_o fair_a build_v his_o temporal_a power_n upon_o this_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n antiq._n i_o be_o very_o sorrowful_a to_o see_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n so_o vain_o allege_v by_o man_n account_v holy_a wise_a and_o learned_a i_o can_v justify_v they_o initio_fw-la bellarm._n the_o iustif_a l._n 3._o c._n 8._o initio_fw-la bellarmine_n rule_n condemn_v they_o when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v with_o certainty_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o god_n word_n in_o plain_a word_n or_o else_o evident_o deduct_v from_o thence_o by_o good_a consequence_n of_o reason_n but_o for_o this_o great_a point_n i_o speak_v my_o conscience_n here_o be_v neither_o evident_a word_n nor_o scarce_o any_o show_n of_o consequence_n §._o 10._o antiquis_fw-la but_o for_o the_o contrary_a 47._o see_v k._n james_n praemonition_n pag._n 47._o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n both_o evident_a word_n and_o manifest_a consequence_n the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a that_o the_o word_n tibi_fw-la tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n in_o effect_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o another_o place_n mat._n 18.18_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v hinder_v loose_a in_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v and_o loose_v in_o heaven_n whereby_o the_o very_a power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o word_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la use_v to_o peter_n be_v mean_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n both_o of_o ancient_n and_o even_o of_o late_a popish_a writer_n yea_o and_o diverse_a cardinal_n otherwise_o how_o can_v paul_n direct_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o incestuous_a person_n cum_fw-la spiritu_fw-la svo_fw-la whereas_o he_o shall_v then_o have_v say_v cum_fw-la spiritu_fw-la petri_n as_o our_o gracious_a king_n james_n gather_v add_v also_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n use_v their_o censure_n in_o christ_n name_n never_o speak_v of_o his_o vicar_n that_o peter_n in_o all_o the_o apostle_n meeting_n sit_v among_o they_o as_o one_o of_o their_o number_n that_o when_o letter_n be_v send_v from_o the_o council_n act_n 15.22_o 23._o the_o style_n be_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n etc._n etc._n without_o mention_n of_o the_o head_n thereof_o that_o saint_n paul_n blame_v the_o corinthian_n for_o that_o some_o say_v they_o be_v of_o paul_n some_o of_o apollo_n some_o of_o cephas_n some_o of_o christ_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o cephas_n that_o be_v peter_z have_v be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n that_o saint_n paul_n compare_v or_o rather_o prefer_v himself_o before_o peter_n galat._n 2._o which_o have_v be_v rude_o do_v have_v he_o think_v peter_n his_o head_n such_o reason_n allege_v our_o judicious_a king_n 6._o see_v also_o before_o sect_n 6._o to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v also_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v compel_v to_o give_v account_n of_o his_o do_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o contend_v and_o contest_v with_o he_o about_o they_o act_n 11._o i_o hope_v these_o allegation_n be_v far_o more_o pregnant_a against_o the_o supremacy_n of_o saint_n peter_n than_o the_o romist_n be_v for_o it_o §._o 11._o antiq._n yet_o the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v the_o scripture_n so_o 2●1_n these_o father_n be_v thus_o allege_v by_o mr_n hart_n conference_n with_o d._n raynolds_n cap._n 5_o division_n 3._o p._n 217_o out_o of_o stapleton_n priu_fw-la do_v l._n 6._o c._n 13_o raynolds_n ib._n pag._n 2●1_n that_o they_o give_v s._n peter_n most_o honourable_a title_n s._n austen_n say_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v conspicuous_a &_o preeminent_a with_o excellent_a grace_n in_o peter_n chrysostom_n call_v he_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o chief_a the_o top_n of_o the_o company_n theodoret_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o title_n be_v give_v he_o by_o all_o antiquity_n other_o add_v out_o of_o epiphanius_n the_o high_a of_o the_o apostle_n austen_n the_o head_n precedent_n the_o first_o of_o they_o and_o cyprian_a say_v the_o lord_n do_v choose_v peter_n first_o haply_o he_o mean_v his_o first_o apostle_n not_o his_o first_o disciple_n for_o audrew_n be_v first_o a_o disciple_n and_o follow_v christ_n as_o saint_n ambrose_n observe_v and_o saint_n jerom_n say_v peter_n be_v of_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o st._n paul_n go_v to_o visit_v he_o as_o himself_o write_v gal._n 2._o and_o jerom_n say_v also_o that_o peter_n be_v choose_v one_o among_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o of_o such_o say_n as_o these_o the_o father_n book_n be_v full_a antiquis_fw-la do_v not_o doctor_n 3._o doctor_n see_v raynolds_n &_o hart_n ibid._n cap._n 5._o divis_fw-la 3._o raynolds_n there_o answer_v you_o sound_o and_o full_o which_o you_o may_v read_v there_o at_o large_a the_o brief_a substance_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o all_o the_o father_n say_n touch_v only_o three_o prerogative_n the_o first_o of_o authority_n the_o second_o of_o primacy_n the_o three_o of_o principality_n but_o all_o far_o short_a of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o the_o pope_n now_o claim_v 1_o the_o authority_n mention_v by_o saint_n jerom_n be_v only_a credit_n and_o estimation_n for_o so_o jerom_n express_v his_o own_o meaning_n saint_n paul_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o confer_v of_o the_o gospel_n with_o they_o that_o be_v esteem_v that_o be_v with_o peter_z and_o other_o apostle_n to_o wit_n with_o james_n peter_n and_o john_n who_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v pillar_n gal._n 2.2.9_o for_o his_o conference_n with_o apostle_n of_o such_o authority_n or_o estimation_n may_v add_v some_o credit_n authority_n and_o estimation_n to_o
bear_v themselves_o proud_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n so_o be_v saint_n austen_n with_o 216._o other_o bishop_n with_o four_o general_a counsel_n of_o africa_n carthage_n millevis_n and_o hippo_n condemn_v and_o curse_a by_o eulabius_n and_o declare_v by_o boniface_n the_o pope_n to_o be_v prick_v forward_o by_o the_o devil_n and_o wilful_o to_o live_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o die_v in_o schism_n this_o history_n report_v by_o mr_n harding_n yield_v a_o great_a inconvenience_n that_o such_o good_a man_n as_o saint_n augustine_n cyprian_n fulgentius_n and_o many_o other_o shall_v willing_o live_v and_o die_v out_o of_o the_o community_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o schismatic_o and_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o think_v themselves_o safe_a enough_o and_o general_o account_v by_o the_o world_n to_o be_v good_a catholic_n and_o many_o of_o they_o saint_n and_o therefore_o bellarmine_n have_v reason_n to_o discredit_v this_o story_n of_o the_o reconciliation_n and_o labour_v to_o prove_v it_o counterfeit_a either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n 25._o part_n bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n l._n 2._o c._n 25._o and_o thus_o mr_n d._n harding_n be_v not_o only_o prove_v often_o by_o our_o b._n jewel_n but_o here_o confess_v by_o his_o fellow_n bellarmine_n to_o be_v a_o errant_a catholic_a a_o abuser_n of_o the_o world_n by_o fable_n and_o yet_o late_o again_o 48._o again_o coster_n enchir_o cap._n de_fw-fr summo_fw-la pont._n obiectio_fw-la decima_fw-la solet_fw-la &_o sanders_n the_o visib_n monarch_n lib._n 7._o pag_n 3●9_n as_o lindan_n before_o panopl_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 48._o costerus_n the_o jesuit_n mention_n the_o same_o story_n as_o true_a such_o be_v their_o unity_n among_o themselves_o and_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o both_o history_n and_o doctrine_n if_o this_o history_n be_v true_a then_o in_o those_o time_n holy_a man_n saint_n and_o martyr_n make_v no_o great_a conscience_n to_o resist_v the_o pope_n to_o reject_v his_o sovereignty_n to_o live_v and_o die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o the_o story_n be_v false_a then_o condemn_v your_o great_a d._n harding_n and_o the_o author_n which_o he_o follow_v as_o abuser_n of_o the_o world_n by_o falsity_n by_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o whatsoever_o title_n the_o ancient_a father_n give_v to_o saint_n peter_n they_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n now_o challenge_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o pretend_a successor_n §._o 13._o for_o indeed_o the_o thing_n wherein_o saint_n peter_n excel_v the_o other_o apostle_n be_v personal_a proper_a to_o his_o person_n only_o and_o not_o communicable_a to_o his_o successor_n to_o be_v the_o elder_a first_o choose_v of_o great_a estimation_n full_a of_o grace_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o thing_n descend_v to_o his_o successor_n but_o proper_a to_o himself_o antiq._n neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n challenge_v these_o property_n but_o his_o universality_n of_o commission_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o his_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n antiquis_fw-la but_o in_o these_o two_o thing_n the_o other_o apostle_n be_v his_o equal_n 11._o prove_v before_o §_o 6_o &_o 11._o saint_n paul_n have_v care_n over_o all_o church_n 2_o cor._n 11._o so_o have_v the_o rest_n and_o all_o of_o they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o error_n both_o in_o teach_v and_o write_v antiq._n true_a but_o they_o can_v not_o leave_v these_o to_o their_o successor_n as_o saint_n peter_n might_n antiquis_fw-la so_o say_v bellarmine_n indeed_o pontificatum_fw-la indeed_o de_fw-fr pont_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 9_o §_o respondeo_fw-la pontificatum_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la universalis_fw-la petro_n data_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la ordinario_fw-la pastori_fw-la cvi_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la succederetur_fw-la alijs_fw-la vero_fw-la tanquam_fw-la delegatis_fw-la quibus_fw-la non_fw-la succederetur_fw-la what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o forsooth_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n make_v saint_n peter_n supreme_a pastor_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o likewise_o his_o successor_n for_o ever_o 114._o see_v doctor_n field_n church_n book_n 5._o cap._n 23._o pag._n 114._o but_o afterward_o he_o give_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o their_o life_n only_o a_o strange_a conceit_n christ_n first_o give_v he_o a_o monarchy_n and_o afterward_o take_v it_o away_o again_o avoid_v his_o first_o grant_n to_o one_o by_o his_o second_o grant_n to_o eleven_o more_o for_o by_o make_v all_o the_o twelve_o of_o equal_a authority_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o towards_o all_o person_n so_o that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o can_v limit_v or_o restrain_v another_o he_o take_v away_o the_o monarchy_n from_o one_o which_o he_o have_v first_o give_v he_o and_o make_v it_o a_o aristocracy_n of_o twelve_o equal_n in_o power_n and_o at_o their_o death_n take_v away_o succ●ssion_n from_o eleven_o and_o give_v it_o to_o one_o make_v a_o monarchy_n of_o the_o aristocracy_n again_o and_o raise_v saint_n peter_n successor_n to_o be_v great_a than_o peter_n himself_o have_v be_v without_o any_o peer_n honour_v the_o pope_n more_o than_o he_o honour_v peter_n for_o peter_n be_v only_o one_o of_o the_o duodecem_fw-la viri_fw-la but_o his_o successor_n a_o sole_a and_o absolute_a monarch_n and_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n successor_n be_v underling_n receive_v all_o their_o call_n mission_n and_o commission_n from_o he_o and_o not_o to_o be_v restrain_v limit_v govern_v by_o he_o alone_o who_o will_v not_o take_v this_o for_o a_o strange_a paradox_n unworthy_a of_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o yet_o this_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o hold_v for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v all_o equal_a in_o power_n and_o commission_n and_o receive_v it_o immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o not_o from_o peter_n which_o they_o can_v they_o do_v not_o deny_v second_o because_o if_o all_o the_o apostle_n shall_v leave_v their_o power_n to_o their_o successor_n than_o their_o successor_n shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o saint_n peter_n but_o shall_v derive_v their_o power_n from_o christ_n himself_o by_o a_o line_n of_o succession_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n do_v and_o consequent_o all_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o by_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n whereof_o there_o be_v and_o be_v innumerable_a shall_v have_v no_o dependence_n of_o saint_n peter_n neither_o can_v be_v limit_v or_o order_v by_o his_o successor_n as_o bellarmine_n see_v well_o enough_o ratio_fw-la enough_o lib._n 4_o cap._n 24._o §._o at_o contra_fw-la &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 23._o §._o &_o secunda_fw-la ratio_fw-la therefore_o where_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a power_n with_o peter_n their_o note_n say_v this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n which_o cease_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v and_o pass_v not_o over_o unto_o bishop_n 221._o bishop_n in_o the_o annotation_n to_o cyprian_a print_v at_o rome_n by_o paulus_n manutius_n at_o the_o pope_n command_n raynolds_n &_o hart_n p._n 221._o bellarmine_n prima_fw-la bellarmine_n bellar._n de_fw-fr pont_n lib._n 1._o c._n 23_o §._o vig●sima_fw-la prima_fw-la see_v that_o this_o shift_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o pope_n turn_n because_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o the_o apostle_n successor_n lineal_o come_v from_o they_o which_o no_o way_n shall_v depend_v upon_o saint_n peter_n therefore_o he_o have_v another_o conceit_n more_o strange_a than_o the_o former_a that_o the_o rest_n be_v make_v also_o apostle_n by_o christ_n and_o so_o continue_v for_o their_o life_n but_o they_o be_v consecrate_v bishop_n not_o by_o christ_n but_o by_o saint_n peter_n and_o so_o consequent_o the_o apostolic_a office_n cease_v all_o the_o bishop_n authority_n be_v derive_v from_o saint_n peter_n a_o fine_a conceit_n be_v it_o true_a but_o himself_o say_v present_o after_o episcopatum_fw-la after_o ib._n §._o respondeo_fw-la in_o apostolatu_fw-la contineri_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n office_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n office_n so_o that_o in_o be_v apostle_n they_o be_v bishop_n also_o without_o any_o further_a or_o new_a ordination_n for_o what_o ecclesiastical_a act_n can_v any_o bishop_n do_v which_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o christ_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n power_n to_o preach_v and_o baptize_v mat._n 28.19_o power_n to_o minister_v the_o holy_a communion_n luke_n 22.19_o power_n of_o the_o key_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n of_o plant_v church_n ordain_v bishop_n and_o minister_n for_o the_o apostleship_n be_v the_o high_a office_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o contain_v the_o power_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o it_o cyril_n it_o bellar_n de_fw-fr pont_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 23._o §._o addit_fw-la cyril_n
he_o shall_v appoint_v open_a or_o secret_a enemy_n to_o the_o state_n against_o their_o king_n and_o to_o take_v arm_n against_o he_o and_o by_o war_n insurrection_n or_o treason_n to_o throw_v the_o land_n on_o heap_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o chaos_n of_o miserable_a confusion_n or_o suppose_v the_o bull_n go_v so_o far_o as_o pius_n v._o his_o bull_n against_o our_o right_a gracious_a and_o famous_a queen_n elizabeth_n to_o pronounce_v the_o king_n to_o be_v no_o king_n to_o discharge_v the_o subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o he_o to_o command_v they_o to_o take_v arm_n against_o he_o and_o by_o any_o mean_n to_o depose_v or_o bring_v he_o to_o ruin_v now_o the_o king_n life_n and_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o damnable_a sin_n of_o the_o people_n must_v depend_v upon_o this_o brief_a or_o bull_n for_o it_o must_v be_v execute_v whether_o it_o come_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o man_n or_o as_o pope_n poor_a blind_a people_n must_v be_v lead_v with_o a_o piè_fw-fr credendum_fw-la and_o neither_o have_v the_o mean_n or_o any_o mind_n to_o know_v whether_o this_o bull_n come_v from_o the_o pope_n canonical_o enter_v or_o mature_o deliberate_v or_o wise_o and_o orderly_o proceed_n if_o any_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v imagine_v in_o such_o mischievous_a practice_n or_o whether_o it_o come_v from_o a_o non-pope_n or_o misinform_v or_o unjust_a audiendum_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pen_v l._n 4._o c._n 2_o §._o deinde_fw-la catholici_fw-la conveniunt_fw-la pontificem_fw-la sive_fw-la errare_fw-la possit_fw-la sive_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la omnibus_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la obedienter_fw-la audiendum_fw-la rash_a or_o ill_o advise_v howsoever_o it_o be_v no_o man_n must_v judge_v christ_n vicar_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n all_o must_v obey_v alas_o that_o christ_n pretend_a vicar_n shall_v do_v the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n alas_o that_o man_n pious_o mind_v shall_v be_v so_o impious_o bewitch_v to_o become_v the_o instrument_n of_o antichrist_n think_v to_o do_v service_n to_o christ_n himself_o alas_o that_o learned_a man_n shall_v abuse_v god_n gift_n of_o wit_n learning_n and_o other_o talent_n bend_v all_o their_o force_n to_o maintain_v such_o doctrine_n antiq._n sir_n keep_v your_o passion_n for_o other_o company_n reason_n shall_v prevail_v with_o i_o more_o than_o passion_n antiquis_fw-la dear_a friend_n it_o be_v not_o passion_n but_o compassion_n to_o poor_a deceive_v soul_n bring_v into_o such_o damnable_a course_n by_o such_o efficacy_n of_o delusion_n though_o i_o know_v not_o how_o in_o such_o cause_v a_o good_a man_n shall_v not_o be_v passionate_a §._o 6._o i._o §._o i._o but_o to_o return_v to_o reason_n from_o which_o your_o reasonless_a distinction_n draw_v i_o in_o our_o former_a example_n of_o pope_n erring_n do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o although_o the_o papist_n of_o this_o age_n excuse_v honorius_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o count_v he_o a_o saint_n yet_o the_o catholic_n of_o former_a age_n account_v he_o a_o heretic_n for_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n condemn_v he_o 11._o bellar._n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n l._n 4._o c._n 11._o and_o if_o that_o council_n be_v misinform_v or_o corrupt_a as_o bellarmine_n imagine_v and_o thereby_o induce_v also_o the_o seven_o council_n and_o pope_n leo_n also_o to_o curse_v and_o condemn_v he_o yet_o it_o appear_v thereby_o that_o they_o think_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o pope_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o sure_o neither_o liberius_n nor_o honorius_n nor_o any_o other_o pope_n have_v ever_o be_v tax_v of_o heresy_n if_o the_o world_n have_v then_o think_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a ii_o §._o ii_o this_o also_o give_v we_o another_o argument_n against_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o now-church_n of_o rome_n that_o none_o of_o the_o ancient_n ever_o know_v or_o acknowledge_v any_o infallible_a judge_n in_o the_o church_n ●0_n mr_n bedels_n letter_n to_o wadsworth_n p._n 53._o 59_o ●0_n though_o we_o may_v imagine_v such_o a_o one_o will_v have_v be_v a_o wonderful_a benefit_n in_o secure_v all_o man_n f●om_fw-mi error_n with_o great_a tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o ease_v leatned_a man_n of_o much_o unnecessary_a contention_n and_o of_o great_a labour_n and_o study_v and_o choke_v all_o heresy_n both_o easy_o and_o quick_o and_o thereby_o divinity_n shall_v have_v have_v the_o honour_n above_o all_o other_o profession_n to_o reduce_v all_o doubt_n to_o certainty_n if_o any_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v it_o be_v most_o strange_a that_o the_o ancient_n write_v of_o all_o other_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n shall_v never_o speak_v word_n of_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o such_o excellent_a and_o necessary_a use_n as_o be_v imagine_v therefore_o their_o very_a silence_n thereof_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o their_o contention_n with_o the_o pope_n show_v it_o more_o full_o for_o no_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o appoint_v by_o god_n iii_o §._o iii_o will_v refuse_v his_o opinion_n or_o government_n but_o we_o find_v the_o ancient_a wise_a and_o holy_a bishop_n make_v no_o bone_n ordinary_o to_o reject_v they_o both_o in_o the_o very_a infancy_n of_o this_o affect_a supremacy_n 26._o supremacy_n see_v this_o story_n in_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 24_o 25_o 26._o when_o pope_n victor_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o east_n church_n for_o not_o concur_v with_o he_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n day_n not_o only_o polycrates_n and_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n reject_v his_o decision_n but_o most_o of_o the_o western_a as_o irenaeus_n with_o his_o french_a clergy_n grave_o reprove_v he_o of_o too_o much_o presumption_n epistle_n presumption_n see_v cyprian_n epistle_n afterward_o when_o the_o pope_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o hear_v appeal_v of_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v wrong_v by_o their_o own_o country_n officer_n which_o be_v the_o small_a portion_n of_o supremacy_n yet_o cyprian_n a_o holy_a martyr_n resist_v he_o 7._o he_o bellar._n the_o pontiff_a rom_n l._n 4_o cap_n 7._o and_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o africa_n refuse_v his_o judgement_n and_o government_n yea_o saint_n cyprian_n with_o a_o council_n of_o fourscore_o bishop_n decree_v direct_o against_o the_o pope_n cypriani_fw-la pope_n council_n ●arthag_fw-mi de_fw-fr haeret._n b●ptiz_n inter_fw-la opera_fw-la cypriani_fw-la and_o when_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o a_o nationall_n council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n have_v decree_v non_fw-la debere_fw-la haereticos_fw-la rebaptizari_fw-la that_o heretic_n shall_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v yet_o cyprian_a thought_n and_o teach_v the_o contrary_n constat_fw-la cyprian●m_fw-la contrarium_fw-la sensisse_fw-la &_o mordicus_fw-la defendisse_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n &c_n bellarmine_n bellar._n l._n 2._o d●_n concilijs_fw-la c._n 5._o see_v euseb_n hist_o li_z 7_o cap._n 2_o 3_o 4._o see_v these_o and_o many_o more_o the_o like_a history_n in_o b._n ●ilson_n true_a ●iff●●ence_n part_n 1._o p._n 96._o &c_n &c_n the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n and_o saint_n augustine_n among_o they_o resist_v three_o pope_n in_o succession_n sosimus_n bonifacius_n and_o celestine_n about_o appeal_n to_o rome_n these_o thing_n be_v notorious_a and_o history_n have_v many_o more_o the_o like_a and_o though_o some_o of_o these_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n yet_o they_o always_o think_v the_o pope_n in_o the_o wrong_n and_o will_v never_o have_v oppose_v he_o have_v they_o think_v he_o their_o infallible_a judge_n by_o their_o do_n therefore_o and_o write_n they_o show_v the_o general_a opinion_n of_o man_n in_o their_o time_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o general_a governor_n over_o they_o and_o that_o he_o be_v as_o fallible_a in_o judgement_n as_o other_o bishop_n 61._o bedel_n letter_n pag_n 61._o consider_v also_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o can_v not_o err_v in_o his_o interpretation_n why_o do_v pope_n damasus_n consult_v with_o jerom_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o many_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o rather_o set_v down_o the_o sense_n thereof_o himself_o and_o declare_v with_o his_o own_o pen_n what_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v hold_v without_o danger_n or_o possibility_n of_o error_n or_o why_o have_v our_o fond_a father_n macerate_v their_o body_n and_o beat_v their_o brain_n to_o write_v commentary_n upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o rather_o register_v the_o pope_n exposition_n which_o have_v be_v a_o work_n worth_a all_o the_o father_n book_n and_o indeed_o equal_a to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o better_o and_o more_o useful_a for_o the_o church_n whereas_o now_o many_o condemn_v that_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n for_o blasphemy_n where_o it_o say_v by_o a_o shameful_a corruption_n of_o saint_n augustine_n that_o the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n be_v enrol_v among_o the_o
eos_fw-la orbem_fw-la which_o be_v in_o english_a the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n &_o he_o have_v let_v the_o world_n upon_o they_o but_o which_o they_o understand_v thus_o the_o cardinal_n be_v lord_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n cardines_fw-la id_fw-la ●st_fw-la cardinal_n super_fw-la q●ibus_fw-la diu_fw-la j●m_fw-la qua_fw-la deb●it_fw-la qui●scere_fw-la movetur_fw-la t●●●ra_fw-la say_v our_o bishop_n andrew_n ad_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la ●ella●mini_fw-la apologiam_fw-la responsic_n cap._n 4._o pag_n 97._o cardinal_n be_v such_o henge_n as_o the_o earth_n move_v upon_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v quiet_a this_o dignity_n be_v not_o n●w_o say_v bella●m●ne_n ib._n for_o it_o be_v 5●●_n year_n old_a but_o sure_o that_o be_v new_a that_o come_v n●●_n in_o till_o a●ter_v twice_o 500_o year_n and_o more_o this_o be_v allege_v and_o confute_v by_o azorius_fw-la instit_fw-la moral_a part_n 2._o l._n 4._o c._n 1._o §._o 3_o queritur_fw-la b._n mo●●●n_n appeal_n l._n 4._o c._n 19_o sect_n 3._o they_o be_v make_v the_o only_a elector_n of_o the_o pope_n after_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v first_o thrust_v out_o from_o the_o election_n than_o the_o people_n and_o afterward_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o short_a time_n the_o cardinal_n grow_v to_o be_v fellow_n to_o king_n guardian_n to_o prince_n and_o protector_n of_o nation_n but_o all_o to_o the_o pope_n best_a interest_n they_o be_v create_v with_o these_o word_n estote_fw-la fratres_n nostri_fw-la &_o principes_fw-la mundi_fw-la be_v you_o our_o brethren_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n pope_n pius_n 2._o speak_v thus_o to_o his_o new_a create_a cardinal_n vos_fw-fr senatores_fw-la vrbis_fw-la &_o regum_fw-la simile_n eritis_fw-la very_fw-la mundi_fw-la cardines_fw-la super_fw-la quos_fw-la militantis_fw-la ostium_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la voluendum_fw-la ac_fw-la regendum_fw-la est_fw-la you_o senator_n of_o the_o city_n and_o like_a to_o king_n shall_v be_v the_o true_a hook_n or_o henge_n of_o the_o world_n upon_o which_o the_o door_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n be_v to_o be_v turn_v and_o rule_v they_o be_v by_o innocent_a the_o four_o dignify_v with_o purple_a in_o the_o age_n when_o transubstantiation_n be_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o transubstantiate_v but_o transaccidentate_v and_o make_v more_o glorious_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n about_o anno_fw-la 1250._o thus_o their_o dignity_n &_o authority_n be_v great_a and_o as_o great_a be_v their_o maintenance_n and_o wealth_n for_o to_o this_o dignity_n be_v choose_v the_o great_a prelate_n of_o sundry_a diocese_n and_o province_n as_o of_o york_n for_o example_n and_o canterbury_n in_o england_n rheims_n and_o roan_n in_o france_n toledo_n in_o spain_n lisbon_n in_o portugal_n mila●_n ravenna_n venice_n in_o italy_n in_o germany_n colen_n trier_n and_o man_n in_o bohemia_n praga_n in_o poland_n cracovia_n in_o hungary_n strigonium_n and_o so_o forth_o the_o chief_a bishop_n in_o all_o christendom_n to_o be_v the_o cardinal_a priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o rome_n and_o although_o their_o dignity_n be_v name_v of_o some_o parish_n or_o deaconship_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o hold_v their_o bishopric_n still_o and_o many_o other_o add_v to_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o perpetual_a administration_n as_o tho._n wolsey_n archbishop_z of_o york_n have_v the_o title_n of_o priest_n of_o s._n cicilies_n parish_n in_o rome_n and_o perpetual_a administrator_n of_o the_o archbishopricke_n of_o york_n etc._n stow._n speed_v etc._n etc._n and_o of_o the_o other_o bishopric_n which_o he_o enjoy_v by_o other_o trick_n and_o title_n our_o chronicle_n reckon_v tourney_v in_o france_n card._n rainol_n &_o hart._n cap._n 7._o div_o 6._o pag._n 386._o onuphrius_n lib._n de_fw-la rom._n pont._n &_o card._n lincoln_n winchester_n bath_n worcester_n and_o hereford_n in_o england_n seven_o bishopricke_n beside_o the_o abbey_n of_o s._n alban_n cardinal_n hippolytus_n be_v deacon_n of_o s._n lucy_n in_o rome_n &_o archpriest_n of_o s._n peter_n have_v three_o archbishopric_n some_o hundred_o of_o mile_n distant_a milan_n in_o lombardy_n capua_n in_o naples_n strigonium_n in_o hungary_n beside_o three_o other_o bishopric_n one_o in_o hungary_n two_o in_o italy_n agria_n mutina_n and_o ferrara_n though_o other_o have_v but_o 5_o 4_o 3_o 2_o or_o but_o one_o and_o if_o live_v fail_v to_o maintain_v the_o cardinal_n pomp_n the_o pope_n use_a reservation_n and_o provision_n of_o benefice_n beside_o bishopric_n and_o abbey_n such_o as_o then_o be_v void_a 3_o walsingam_fw-la hist_o angl._n in_o edw_n 3_o or_o shall_v next_o fall_v void_a in_o all_o country_n until_o they_o amount_v to_o a_o certain_a rate_n as_o of_o 2000_o mark_n in_o england_n for_o two_o new_a cardinal_n in_o king_n edward_n the_o three_o time_n card._n onuph_n in_o rom._n pont._n &_o card._n and_o the_o like_a for_o ten_o other_o in_o other_o country_n at_o the_o same_o time_n new_o create_v by_o pope_n clement_n the_o sixth_o this_o exceed_a great_a dignity_n and_o wealth_n meet_v together_o allure_v many_o to_o desire_v these_o place_n and_o the_o politic_a pope_n use_a to_o choose_v cardinal_n of_o two_o sort_n some_o of_o noble_a and_o potent_a family_n to_o add_v strength_n by_o the_o alliance_n of_o prince_n and_o great_a noble_n and_o to_o get_v intelligence_n and_o oar_n in_o their_o government_n other_o of_o great_a wit_n and_o learning_n by_o that_o mean_n also_o to_o enlarge_v and_o uphold_v the_o papacy_n against_o learned_a adversary_n for_o even_o prince_n and_o noble_n second_o son_n or_o other_o kinsman_n want_v maintenance_n to_o support_v their_o nobility_n be_v either_o of_o themselves_o desirous_a or_o may_v easy_o be_v induce_v to_o accept_v of_o such_o place_n and_o their_o parent_n and_o friend_n be_v glad_a to_o be_v so_o ease_v of_o the_o charge_n to_o maintain_v they_o and_o the_o whole_a family_n become_v thereby_o assure_v friend_n to_o the_o papacy_n and_o good_a instrument_n to_o uphold_v and_o defend_v it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n many_o learned_a man_n that_o want_v both_o nobility_n and_o maintenance_n and_o thirst_v after_o both_o by_o have_v such_o brave_a place_n bestow_v upon_o they_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v bind_v by_o all_o their_o wit_n learning_n and_o diligence_n to_o maintain_v they_o but_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o safe_a to_o have_v cardinal_n in_o who_o both_o these_o thing_n nobility_n of_o blood_n and_o excellency_n of_o learning_n do_v meet_v lest_o know_v a_o double_a worthiness_n in_o themselves_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o much_o behold_v to_o their_o place_n as_o their_o place_n to_o they_o nor_o so_o pliable_a or_o ready_a to_o do_v their_o best_a in_o their_o defence_n when_o they_o find_v themselves_o able_a to_o stand_v without_o they_o these_o cardinal_n of_o both_o sort_n by_o their_o kindred_n wit_n learning_n policy_n counsel_n and_o diligence_n in_o manage_v the_o state_n be_v great_a upholder_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o yet_o beyond_o all_o this_o the_o pope_n make_v a_o further_a use_n of_o they_o to_o wit_n to_o show_v a_o needlesnesse_n of_o any_o counsel_n either_o general_a or_o particular_a since_o that_o grave_a senate_n of_o cardinal_n be_v full_a sufficient_a to_o manage_v all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n without_o further_a trouble_n to_o the_o world_n bellarmine_n confess_v that_o the_o particular_a roman_a counsel_n exoleverunt_fw-la be_v wear_v out_o of_o use_n 39_o bellar._n apologia_fw-la ad_fw-la praefationem_fw-la monitoriam_fw-la jacobi_fw-la regis_fw-la p._n 39_o &_o it_o seem_v say_v he_o the_o consistory_n of_o cardinal_n succeed_v in_o their_o place_n 107._o see_v b._n andrew_n answer_n to_o it_o pag._n 107._o and_o the_o general_a counsel_n as_o he_o call_v they_o which_o the_o church_n have_v have_v since_o the_o cardinal_n come_v to_o the_o height_n which_o now_o they_o enjoy_v three_o at_o lateran_n two_o at_o lion_n one_o at_o vienna_n one_o at_o constans_n one_o at_o flor●ns_n and_o one_o at_o trent_n be_v not_o true_a general_a counsel_n no_o better_o than_o the_o particular_n of_o rome_n now_o vanish_v since_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v there_o according_a to_o the_o appetite_n of_o one_o man_n and_o may_v more_o fit_o be_v call_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n than_o the_o canon_n of_o counsel_n except_o only_o that_o of_o constance_n wherein_o matter_n be_v carry_v by_o the_o deputy_n of_o nation_n the_o pope_n bring_v into_o better_a order_n three_o pope_n at_n once_o abdicate_v and_o where_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o thenceforward_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o than_o 24_o cardinal_n and_o that_o evermore_o within_o ten_o year_n a_o council_n shall_v be_v call_v thing_n not_o perform_v neither_o will_v be_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v wonder_n the_o cardinal_n will_v mention_v this_o council_n and_o why_o shall_v he_o call_v the_o other_o which_o he_o mention_v general_a when_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o call_v they_o and_o of_o order_v
they_o and_o safe_a come_n to_o they_o and_o freedom_n of_o voice_n be_v all_o take_v away_o if_o thing_n be_v thus_o carry_v what_o need_v any_o senate_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o a_o senate_n of_o present_a cardinal_n either_o can_v do_v all_o or_o must_v do_v all_o therefore_o this_o invention_n state_n and_o choice_n of_o cardinal_n be_v a_o powerful_a politic_a device_n to_o maintain_v the_o papacy_n and_o keep_v off_o the_o strong_a opposition_n §._o 6._o etc._n see_v relation_n of_o religion_n in_o these_o western_a part_n §._o 13._o etc._n etc._n monastery_n also_o as_o now_o they_o be_v use_v be_v great_a upholder_n of_o the_o papacy_n in_o bind_v many_o thousand_o fast_o unto_o it_o for_o their_o own_o maintenance_n for_o there_o be_v entertainment_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n man_n woman_n noble_a base_a in_o the_o high_o or_o low_a place_n they_o be_v haven_n or_o final_a refuge_n to_o receive_v man_n of_o discontent_a humour_n or_o despair_a passion_n or_o unfortunate_a or_o unfit_a for_o other_o trade_n or_o disgrace_v or_o cross_v in_o the_o world_n or_o distaste_v with_o the_o world_n or_o tire_v out_o with_o enemy_n or_o want_v maintenance_n there_o they_o may_v be_v discharge_v of_o toil_n and_o care_n and_o provide_v for_o without_o charge_n to_o their_o parent_n or_o friend_n to_o the_o great_a ease_n of_o parent_n and_o better_a portion_n of_o their_o other_o brethren_n who_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o the_o abbey_n and_o papacy_n for_o this_o benefit_n and_o there_o be_v such_o diversity_n of_o order_n and_o degree_n of_o monastery_n in_o strictness_n or_o slackness_n of_o their_o rule_n that_o in_o one_o or_o other_o every_o humour_n may_v receive_v contentment_n the_o more_o devout_a and_o melancholic_a in_o the_o more_o severe_a and_o austere_a order_n the_o loose_a in_o order_n of_o great_a liberty_n all_o of_o they_o for_o present_a maintenance_n without_o care_n and_o protection_n without_o fear_n and_o for_o hope_n of_o rise_v to_o high_a and_o high_a place_n among_o such_o multitude_n and_o diversity_n must_v needs_o love_v and_o defend_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n the_o author_n of_o their_o welfare_n and_o though_o they_o have_v frequent_a fasting_n and_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n yet_o with_o a_o little_a use_n they_o can_v endure_v it_o well_o as_o matter_n nothing_o comparable_a to_o the_o benefit_n they_o receive_v these_o be_v but_o physic_n to_o keep_v they_o alive_a against_o the_o disease_n which_o else_o their_o ease_n and_o fullness_n at_o other_o time_n will_v breed_v and_o their_o delight_n be_v many_o to_o content_v they_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n inward_a hope_n that_o all_o their_o outward_a course_n high_o please_v god_n and_o they_o live_v in_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n far_o above_o the_o best_a of_o ordinary_a christian_n merit_v heaven_n &_o many_o blessing_n both_o for_o themselves_o and_o other_o their_o benefactor_n they_o have_v their_o legend_n and_o familiar_a relation_n of_o vision_n miracle_n apparition_n and_o revelation_n much_o please_v the_o credulous_a superstitious_a and_o fantastical_a they_o have_v their_o sweet_a music_n glorious_a show_n beautiful_a image_n rich_a vestment_n variable_a ceremony_n for_o the_o admiration_n of_o the_o simple_a their_o city_n and_o great_a place_n abound_v in_o all_o variety_n both_o of_o thing_n and_o time_n and_o order_n to_o content_v and_o delight_v the_o several_a humour_n of_o all_o their_o bait_n to_o allure_v their_o hook_n to_o retain_v all_o kind_n of_o people_n one_o day_n all_o mask_n play_n and_o lollity_n another_o day_n all_o procession_n fast_v and_o whip_v themselves_o upon_o one_o door_n a_o excommunication_n cast_v down_o to_o hell_n all_o trangressor_n upon_o another_o a_o jubilee_n or_o pardon_n from_o all_o transgression_n on_o one_o side_n of_o the_o street_n a_o house_n of_o veil_a nun_n on_o the_o other_o side_n a_o house_n of_o open_a courtesan_n and_o the_o stew_n allow_v for_o a_o pension_n pay_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o as_o the_o nun_n never_o be_v any_o state_n in_o the_o world_n so_o strange_o compact_v of_o infinite_a variety_n to_o please_v variety_n of_o humour_n and_o so_o strong_o combine_v to_o maintain_v the_o masterpiece_n never_o be_v any_o prince_n so_o able_a to_o prefer_v his_o servant_n and_o follower_n and_o that_o at_o other_o man_n cost_n as_o the_o pope_n nor_o so_o able_a quick_o and_o easy_o to_o take_v deep_a revenge_n of_o his_o enemy_n his_o authority_n be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o settle_v in_o base_a people_n heart_n his_o power_n so_o strong_a and_o adherent_n so_o many_o his_o agent_n so_o quick_a to_o execute_v his_o will_n that_o any_o sin_n against_o he_o be_v unpardonable_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n any_o sin_n either_o against_o god_n or_o nature_n or_o prince_n or_o state_n by_o intercession_n to_o he_o and_o respective_a attendance_n on_o his_o officer_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o or_o pardon_v or_o pass_v by_o without_o disturbance_n §._o 7._o etc._n see_v relation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o west_n §._o 17._o see_v b._n white_a against_o fisher_n pag._n 186._o etc._n etc._n auricular_a confession_n pretend_v for_o repentance_n reformation_n direction_n and_o comfort_n of_o sinner_n and_o may_v with_o some_o caution_n be_v profitable_o use_v to_o those_o purpose_n yet_o by_o the_o abuse_n do_v yield_v to_o the_o romish_a great_a benefit_n for_o the_o manage_n of_o affair_n since_o thereby_o they_o pry_v into_o the_o heart_n disposition_n conscience_n and_o humour_n of_o all_o man_n noble_n and_o inferior_n in_o every_o country_n whereby_o the_o more_o wise_a and_o politic_a sort_n which_o be_v confessor_n to_o great_a man_n may_v come_v to_o know_v many_o secret_a carriage_n of_o business_n and_o also_o who_o be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n to_o be_v employ_v either_o in_o further_a or_o cross_v their_o design_n and_o by_o enjoin_v penance_n may_v make_v great_a use_n of_o the_o disposition_n which_o by_o such_o confession_n be_v discover_v beside_o the_o gift_n which_o they_o may_v wring_v from_o they_o upon_o their_o deathbed_n or_o other_o sickness_n of_o all_o which_o i_o wish_v there_o be_v no_o example_n or_o practice_n §._o 8._o as_o we_o find_v the_o former_a policy_n make_v principal_o for_o the_o pope_n greatness_n strength_n and_o honour_n set_v he_o up_o above_o all_o the_o world_n clergy_n and_o laity_n so_o we_o find_v many_o other_o notable_o contrive_v to_o furnish_v he_o and_o his_o agent_n with_o treasure_n answerable_a to_o so_o great_a a_o state_n beside_o his_o temporal_n give_v by_o great_a prince_n or_o win_v from_o they_o and_o other_o by_o power_n or_o policy_n his_o come_n in_o be_v great_a from_o abeye_n bishopric_n and_o benefice_n their_o institution_n induction_n inuestiture_n palles_fw-la first_o fruit_n tenthes_o subsidy_n and_o other_o imposition_n upon_o occasion_n or_o at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o by_o suit_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n of_o controversy_n from_o all_o country_n and_o by_o appeal_n reservation_n exemption_n 99_o relation_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o west_n §._o 38._o pag._n 98_o 99_o dispensation_n and_o other_o rich_a invention_n abbey_n many_o of_o they_o have_v extrordinary_a faculty_n grant_v they_o whereby_o they_o gather_v much_o money_n but_o the_o pope_n use_v they_o as_o sponge_n to_o drink_v what_o juice_n they_o can_v from_o the_o people_n that_o afterward_o he_o may_v wring_v they_o out_o one_o by_o one_o into_o his_o own_o cistern_n when_o religious_a house_n and_o bishopric_n wax_v rich_a his_o holiness_n let_v they_o blood_n in_o their_o over-full_a vein_n the_o mass_n of_o money_n be_v infinite_a that_o from_o all_o country_n of_o christendom_n come_v in_o this_o way_n so_o that_o their_o temporal_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v their_o principal_n be_v then_o but_o a_o accessary_a addition_n to_o their_o greatness_n the_o people_n likewise_o pay_v their_o peterpence_n 10._o usher_n de_fw-fr success_n eccle_n cap._n 7._o §._o 8_o 9_o 10._o which_o in_o england_n be_v confirm_v by_o w._n conqueror_n and_o make_v a_o yearly_a tribute_n although_o the_o same_o king_n deny_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o the_o pope_n §._o 9_o purgatory_n be_v a_o most_o politic_a device_n as_o it_o be_v now_o hold_v to_o bring_v in_o great_a store_n of_o treasure_n to_o the_o pope_n coffer_n the_o pope_n have_v the_o key_n of_o that_o terrible_a burn_a prison_n wherein_o soul_n must_v fry_v which_o have_v not_o on_o earth_n satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n until_o they_o have_v pay_v the_o uttermost_a farthing_n except_o the_o pope_n by_o mass_n pardon_n pilgrimage_n offering_n and_o such_o like_a let_v they_o out_o which_o help_n be_v not_o to_o be_v afford_v without_o payment_n of_o money_n testify_v their_o repentance_n but_o upon_o good_a payment_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o church_n